Selected quad for the lemma: doctrine_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
doctrine_n church_n contradiction_n teach_v 3,185 5 9.3626 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A05223 Dutifull and respective considerations vpon foure seuerall heads of proofe and triall in matters of religion Proposed by the high and mighty prince, Iames King of Great Britayne, France, and Ireland &c. in his late booke of premonition to all christian princes, for clearing his royall person from the imputation of heresy. By a late minister & preacher in England.; Dutifull and respective considerations upon foure severall heads of proofe and triall in matters of religion. Leech, Humphrey, 1571-1629.; Parsons, Robert, 1546-1610. aut 1609 (1609) STC 15362.5; ESTC S100271 179,103 260

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

to_o make_v good_a against_o they_o in_o the_o particular_a carriage_n and_o passage_n of_o this_o present_a business_n of_o counsel_n let_v we_o but_o leave_v the_o barky_a rind_n and_o outward_a cork_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o inward_a marrow_n and_o substance_n that_o be_v let_v we_o give_v no_o credit_n to_o their_o word_n but_o look_v into_o their_o deed_n and_o we_o shall_v easy_o discern_v yea_o the_o matter_n will_v disclose_v itself_o for_o to_o set_v their_o word_n aside_o who_o we_o have_v ever_o find_v contrary_a in_o their_o deed_n if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v sincere_o embrace_v and_o receive_v for_o catholic_a and_o orthodox_n these_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n which_o do_v resemble_v comprehend_v and_o present_v the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n for_o more_o than_o four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n together_o after_o christ_n then_o must_v it_o follow_v if_o they_o mean_v as_o they_o say_v and_o that_o their_o word_n shall_v not_o prove_v wind_n that_o the_o english_a church_n and_o our_o lay_a parliament_n must_v acknowledge_v and_o admit_v also_o that_o doctrine_n for_o catholic_n and_o orthodox_n which_o without_o impeachment_n controllement_fw-fr or_o contradiction_n of_o any_o can_v be_v substantial_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o hold_v in_o this_o visible_a universal_a church_n whereof_o these_o four_o council_n collective_o represent_v the_o whole_a body_n for_o all_o that_o tyme._n which_o foresay_a doctrine_n that_o both_o it_o and_o every_o point_n thereof_o pass_v for_o so_o many_o age_n uncontrolled_a this_o one_o reason_n may_v suffice_v to_o prove_v instead_o of_o all_o for_o that_o the_o say_v doctrine_n shall_v otherwise_o have_v be_v note_v espy_v out_o reprehend_v and_o censure_v by_o some_o of_o these_o counsel_n else_o have_v they_o not_o do_v their_o duty_n neither_o have_v they_o be_v so_o vigilant_a for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a body_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v if_o have_v condemn_v some_o heresy_n as_o they_o do_v they_o have_v wink_v at_o other_o which_o once_o to_o imagine_v of_o a_o ambrose_n a_o augustine_n &_o a_o hierome_n for_o the_o latin_a church_n a_o basill_n a_o chrysostome_n and_o a_o athanasius_n for_o the_o greek_a nay_o to_o suppose_v it_o and_o that_o confident_o though_o most_o impudent_o of_o all_o the_o great_a saint_n and_o learned_a doctor_n in_o the_o world_n together_o this_o can_v be_v no_o less_o than_o senseless_a absurdity_n gross_a stupidity_n yea_o heathenish_a impiety_n when_o as_o the_o least_o of_o these_o which_o i_o have_v name_v be_v for_o learning_n able_a to_o have_v resist_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o for_o their_o zeal_n will_v have_v spare_v none_o in_o a_o point_n of_o error_n or_o heresy_n as_o i_o may_v instance_n and_o prove_v by_o tertullian_n origen_n and_o s._n cyprian_a be_v any_o of_o these_o though_o never_o so_o great_a by_o the_o rest_n spare_v be_v any_o former_a merit_n though_o never_o so_o many_o respect_v if_o once_o they_o presume_v to_o innovate_v the_o least_o error_n whatsoever_o and_o therefore_o to_o strike_v at_o the_o point_n i_o aim_v at_o in_o the_o period_n of_o the_o conclusion_n do_v the_o english_a church_n and_o parliament_n admit_v all_o the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o continue_a without_o the_o impeachment_n of_o any_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o zealous_a &_o vigilant_a pastor_n in_o the_o church_n i_o think_v it_o will_v make_v great_a difficulty_n and_o let_v it_o reject_v they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o there_o need_v no_o more_o to_o prove_v that_o church_n to_o be_v heretical_a let_v it_o admit_v they_o it_o prove_v itself_o by_o departure_n from_o they_o and_o their_o doctrine_n to_o be_v apostatical_a for_o that_o it_o hould_v not_o the_o same_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o these_o four_o first_o counsel_n which_o it_o make_v show_v to_o receive_v and_o embrace_v in_o a_o word_n let_v it_o admit_v they_o or_o reject_v they_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o wipe_v away_o the_o blot_n and_o blemish_n imputation_n and_o innovation_n of_o damnable_a error_n from_o their_o church_n for_o better_a understanding_n whereof_o as_o also_o of_o some_o other_o particular_n thereto_o belong_v and_o hereupon_o necessary_o depend_v i_o have_v think_v good_a to_o decipher_v out_o these_o ensue_a consideration_n the_o first_o consideration_n my_o first_o consideration_n which_o i_o promise_v as_o the_o very_a err_v groundwork_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v this_o that_o the_o parliament_n and_o church_n of_o england_n admit_v these_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n of_o nyce_n constantinople_n ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n for_o orthodox_n and_o true_o catholic_a as_o represent_v in_o their_o bishop_n the_o complete_a and_o entire_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o their_o several_a age_n must_v needs_o acknowledge_v in_o like_a manner_n that_o for_o these_o first_o four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n or_o rather_o five_o hundred_o for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o probable_a nay_o possible_a that_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o fifty_o year_n the_o same_o shall_v now_o fail_v which_o have_v already_o by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n his_o promise_n continue_v four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n the_o locis_fw-la true_a catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n consist_v not_o only_o of_o the_o elect_a and_o consequent_o be_v invisible_a but_o of_o good_a and_o bad_a and_o thereupon_o be_v visible_a under_o visible_a head_n and_o this_o be_v figure_v by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o net_n that_o catch_v both_o good_a and_o bad_a fish_n and_o by_o the_o field_n that_o bring_v forth_o good_a corn_n and_o weed_n and_o further_o that_o this_o visible_a external_a church_n in_o those_o day_n be_v the_o very_a same_o whereof_o christ_n word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v when_o he_o give_v this_o in_o charge_n to_o one_o upon_o occasion_n and_o supposal_n of_o 15._o a_o complaint_n make_v against_o his_o brother_n which_o if_o he_o succeed_v not_o then_o dic_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la tell_v the_o church_n as_o also_o that_o other_o of_o s._n paul_n that_o the_o church_n be_v columna_fw-la &_o firmamentum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n so_o as_o if_o a_o man_n in_o those_o day_n will_v have_v have_v any_o controversy_n in_o religion_n debate_v and_o resolve_v if_o he_o will_v have_v know_v what_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n have_v commit_v unto_o the_o custody_n of_o the_o church_n for_o canonical_a &_o authentical_a and_o further_o if_o he_o desire_v to_o know_v which_o they_o be_v how_o they_o may_v be_v know_v from_o counterfeit_a how_o they_o may_v be_v true_o sense_v and_o right_o understand_v what_o and_o how_o many_o sacrament_n be_v leave_v by_o christ_n unto_o his_o church_n which_o they_o be_v what_o be_v their_o effect_n &_o operation_n how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v administer_v and_o such_o other_o like_a and_o if_o he_o be_v a_o jew_n or_o gentille_n that_o thus_o demand_v question_v these_o doubt_n and_o will_v upon_o the_o resolution_n thereof_o become_v a_o christian_n but_o be_v unlearned_a will_v be_v instruct_v in_o all_o these_o case_n and_o the_o like_a he_o be_v to_o have_v make_v his_o repair_n and_o recourse_n unto_o this_o external_a visible_a church_n and_o to_o have_v stand_v in_o all_o point_n whatsoever_o unto_o her_o final_a determination_n decision_n direction_n instruction_n and_o perpetual_a government_n in_o all_o these_o first_o five_o age_n without_o malapert_v repugnancy_n or_o obstinate_a reply_n if_o he_o ever_o intend_v to_o be_v save_v and_o if_o upon_o any_o animosity_n or_o pervicacity_n any_o man_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o that_o church_n in_o all_o that_o time_n either_o for_o interpret_n scripture_n in_o his_o own_o sense_n according_a to_o a_o private_a spirit_n or_o for_o pervert_v or_o innovate_a de_fw-la novo_fw-la de_fw-la svo_fw-la of_o his_o own_o head_n or_o brain_n in_o any_o the_o least_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v both_o his_o damnation_n be_v by_o all_o hold_v and_o conclude_v for_o certain_a except_o he_o repent_v and_o listen_v yea_o and_o obey_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n his_o mother_n that_o seek_v to_o reclaine_v he_o for_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o hold_v for_o god_n his_o high_a tribunal_n upon_o earth_n and_o therefore_o irrefragable_a since_o the_o tribunal_n of_o heaven_n stand_v expect_v what_o be_v here_o do_v by_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n be_v ever_o ready_a to_o loose_v or_o bind_v to_o deliver_v over_o unto_o satan_n or_o to_o release_v from_o the_o band_n of_o sin_n error_n and_o heresy_n according_a unto_o the_o former_a pass_v doom_n and_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n as_o among_o other_o father_n s._n john_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o
great_a s._n beda_n for_o the_o latin_a but_o for_o that_o i_o will_v not_o be_v prolix_a and_o because_o i_o hasten_v to_o my_o second_o consideration_n which_o be_v the_o very_a main_a conclusion_n of_o all_o my_o whole_a discourse_n hitherunto_o i_o will_v knit_v up_o all_o with_o that_o golden_a admonition_n of_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n a_o 5._o author_n which_o who_o so_o read_v and_o believe_v it_o be_v impossible_a if_o he_o will_v profess_v any_o religion_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v aught_o else_o but_o a_o roman_a catholic_a well_o his_o word_n be_v these_o catholic_a let_v we_o hold_v that_o say_v he_o which_o have_v be_v believe_v general_o of_o all_o for_o that_o this_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o catholic_a as_o the_o very_a nature_n &_o signification_n of_o the_o name_n do_v import_v and_o then_o for_o further_a explication_n he_o give_v a_o threefold_a prescription_n for_o a_o more_o sure_a and_o infallible_a direction_n and_o this_o be_v universality_n antiquity_n and_o consent_v all_o which_o he_o must_v as_o time_n and_o occasion_n serve_v adhere_v unto_o that_o will_v be_v account_v true_o catholic_a and_o yet_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o four_o chapter_n he_o illustrate_v the_o first_o prescription_n of_o universality_n most_o pertinent_a for_o our_o purpose_n at_o this_o time_n by_o way_n of_o supposition_n and_o question_n move_v and_o answer_v his_o word_n be_v these_o what_o then_o shall_v a_o catholic_n christian_n do_v if_o any_o parcel_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v cut_v itself_o of_o from_o communion_n of_o the_o universal_a faith_n this_o be_v the_o question_n move_v the_o answer_n follow_v what_o else_o forsooth_o shall_v he_o do_v but_o that_o he_o prefer_v the_o health_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n before_o any_o one_o pestilent_a and_o corrupt_a member_n thereof_o 20._o and_o hereupon_o i_o begin_v to_o enter_v into_o a_o serious_a consideration_n and_o a_o severe_a examination_n of_o my_o own_o conscience_n in_o a_o secret_a recollect_v and_o most_o retire_a conference_n betwixt_o god_n and_o my_o own_o soul_n touch_v matter_n of_o religion_n as_o they_o shall_v either_o doom_n i_o or_o save_v i_o at_o the_o last_o day_n first_o i_o consider_v yea_o and_o serious_o within_o my_o own_o hart_n debate_v demand_v of_o myself_o whether_o the_o protestant_n church_n and_o doctrine_n whereof_o i_o then_o be_v a_o real_a and_o formal_a member_n and_o professor_n have_v not_o cut_v itself_o of_o yea_o depart_a and_o separate_v itself_o from_o the_o union_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o universal_a faith_n and_o from_o the_o save_n and_o convert_n gospel_n of_o christ_n his_o kingdom_n which_o be_v first_o to_o be_v preach_v to_o all_o nation_n as_o christ_n 14._o promise_v that_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v before_o the_o world_n great_a destruction_n and_o general_a consummation_n this_o be_v my_o first_o demand_n and_o the_o answer_n return_v unto_o i_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o ancient_a father_n upon_o view_n of_o religion_n their_o doctrine_n and_o compare_v it_o etc._n etc._n nay_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n since_o it_o be_v promise_v to_o be_v the_o guider_n and_o director_n of_o his_o church_n i_o say_v the_o answer_n return_v be_v that_o the_o protestant_n church_n &_o doctrine_n have_v abandon_v both_o catholic_n name_n &_o catholic_n faith_n and_o therefore_o as_o beam_n cut_v of_o from_o the_o sun_n as_o bough_n violent_o break_v of_o from_o the_o tree_n and_o stream_n and_o channel_n part_v and_o separate_v from_o their_o original_a fountain_n as_o s._n cyprian_n speak_v they_o eccles._n be_v to_o perish_v vanish_v and_o come_v to_o naught_o and_o now_o what_o course_n remain_v for_o i_o to_o take_v if_o i_o regard_v at_o all_o the_o welfare_n of_o my_o soul_n but_o to_o follow_v the_o sage_a &_o weighty_a counsel_n of_o my_o foresay_a author_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n my_o author_n indeed_o be_v the_o only_a mean_n next_o under_o god_n of_o my_o conversion_n from_o heresy_n to_o catholic_a religion_n and_o that_o be_v to_o prefer_v the_o health_n and_o welfare_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n before_o any_o one_o pester_v and_o infest_a member_n thereof_o his_o meaning_n in_o plain_a term_n be_v that_o in_o time_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n or_o in_o particular_a country_n apostasy_n from_o the_o catholic_a christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n every_o catholic_a christian_n that_o be_v already_o in_o the_o church_n must_v hoover_n under_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o church_n by_o retire_v into_o her_o lap_n and_o bosom_n in_o time_n of_o any_o danger_n and_o he_o that_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o of_o a_o heretical_a congregation_n and_o consequent_o forth_o of_o the_o church_n must_v endeavour_v by_o all_o mean_v possible_a to_o become_v a_o catholic_a by_o return_v again_o unto_o the_o communion_n of_o catholic_n religion_n out_o of_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o salvation_n 21._o this_o first_o consideration_n i_o enlarge_v yet_o further_o extend_v it_o by_o a_o second_o supposition_n to_o wit_n if_o the_o protestant_n church_n and_o doctrine_n be_v catholic_a indeed_o as_o they_o will_v bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n it_o be_v than_o it_o have_v be_v general_o reaceave_v of_o christian_n over_o all_o christendom_n in_o that_o sense_n as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o opposition_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n then_o the_o protestant_n can_v produce_v visible_a church_n of_o they_o that_o have_v be_v extant_a from_o the_o apostle_n time_n downward_o hitherto_o that_o have_v hold_v the_o self_n same_o point_n of_o doctrine_n the_o self_n same_o number_n of_o sacrament_n &_o other_o such_o difference_n as_o now_o protestant_n church_n have_v in_o they_o from_o the_o roman_a they_o according_a to_o that_o most_o sure_a prescription_n of_o tertullian_n they_o can_v edere_fw-la origines_fw-la 32._o ecclesiarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la evoluere_fw-la ordinem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la suorum_fw-la declare_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o church_n they_o can_v turn_v over_o and_o bring_v forth_o a_o orderly_a succession_n of_o bishop_n run_v on_o as_o he_o say_v from_o the_o very_a beginning_n and_o continue_v catholic_n without_o any_o interruption_n to_o the_o apostle_n time_n then_o can_v they_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o bishop_n that_o hold_v these_o difference_n be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v by_o some_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n for_o so_o say_v tertullian_n can_v the_o church_n of_o the_o smyrnean_o prove_v their_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o s._n policarpus_fw-la ordain_v by_o s._n john_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n prove_v from_o s._n clement_n place_v by_o s._n peter_n in_o one_o word_n 32._o then_o according_a to_o another_o prescription_n of_o tertullian_n can_v 22._o they_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o church_n as_o now_o it_o stand_v in_o contradiction_n with_o we_o conspire_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o original_n apostolical_a and_o mother_n church_n and_o that_o they_o hold_v that_o very_a doctrine_n which_o the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n and_o christ_n from_o god_n and_o that_o the_o same_o have_v continue_v by_o never_o interrupt_v succession_n from_o that_o time_n to_o this_o of_o they_o these_o thing_n if_o they_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a sound_o and_o substantial_o to_o prove_v on_o their_o part_n then_o shall_v i_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o and_o their_o religion_n be_v catholic_a indeed_o and_o that_o out_o of_o their_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n 22._o but_o if_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v by_o they_o attempt_v and_o can_v never_o yet_o be_v prove_v by_o they_o nay_o if_o their_o affirmative_a have_v be_v disprove_v by_o a_o negative_a in_o all_o the_o forename_a note_n mark_n prescription_n of_o the_o church_n and_o against_o heretic_n as_o be_v already_o too_o apparent_o know_v to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n then_o let_v they_o at_o the_o last_o upon_o so_o manifest_a a_o conviction_n ingenuous_o confess_v that_o the_o denomination_n of_o heretic_n rather_o than_o the_o appellation_n of_o catholuke_n do_v proper_o apertaine_v unto_o they_o 23._o and_o albeit_o i_o can_v but_o understand_v that_o the_o heretic_n of_o ancient_a time_n and_o all_o modern_a sectary_n in_o these_o our_o unhappy_a day_n both_o in_o germany_n france_n holland_n scotland_n and_o england_n do_v ambitious_o affect_v this_o renown_a name_n of_o catholic_n to_o have_v it_o give_v unto_o their_o heretical_a congregation_n nay_o which_o be_v more_o howsoever_o they_o do_v fraudulent_o sometime_o clothe_v themselves_o in_o sheep_n skin_n when_o surreptitious_o they_o invest_v themselves_o with_o this_o high_a title_n &_o supreme_a dignity_n of_o a_o catholic_n though_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n among_o themselves_o they_o be_v never_o so_o much_o opposite_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o each_o condemn_v other_o for_o heretic_n nay_o damn_v themselves_o among_o themselves_o and_o
of_o necessity_n make_v the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n if_o ever_o christ_n leave_v behind_o he_o any_o church_n at_o all_o to_o continue_v when_o he_o write_v that_o he_o will_v either_o believe_v they_o or_o at_o least_o wise_a will_v be_v humble_o silent_a and_o not_o condemn_v they_o as_o before_o have_v be_v show_v so_o in_o this_o very_o second_o point_n of_o particular_a father_n i_o find_v it_o thus_o write_v by_o his_o majesty_n 26._o but_o for_o every_o private_a father_n opinion_n say_v he_o it_o bind_v not_o my_o conscience_n more_o than_o bellarmine_n every_o one_o of_o the_o father_n usual_o contradict_v of_o other_o the_o first_o part_n of_o which_o sentence_n to_o wit_n that_o every_o private_a opinion_n of_o every_o father_n bind_v not_o a_o man_n conscience_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o it_o need_v no_o proof_n at_o all_o for_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v for_o if_o the_o opinion_n be_v indeed_o private_a then_o be_v it_o not_o true_o catholic_a and_o consequent_o be_v not_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o bind_v no_o man_n 27._o but_o for_o the_o late_a period_n of_o the_o sentence_n be_v whole_o derogatory_n from_o the_o credit_n of_o antiquity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o father_n do_v usual_o contradict_v other_o in_o matter_n concern_v religion_n this_o must_v needs_o presubpose_v to_o have_v some_o favourable_a interpretation_n afford_v it_o to_o free_v it_o from_o open_a injure_v and_o wrong_v of_o the_o father_n and_o so_o my_o hope_n be_v that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o his_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o wit_n that_o these_o contradiction_n suppose_v to_o be_v a_o among_o the_o father_n be_v only_a diversity_n of_o judgement_n in_o matter_n that_o be_v not_o determinate_o the_o fide_fw-la or_o that_o do_v not_o concern_v any_o article_n of_o belief_n but_o either_o such_o matter_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o may_v without_o breach_n of_o union_n or_o charity_n be_v diverse_o dispute_v of_o among_o catholic_a 2._o man_n or_o else_o when_o diverse_a father_n do_v give_v diverse_a sense_n of_o scripture_n some_o the_o literal_a other_o the_o allegorical_a and_o all_o true_a all_o intend_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o we_o have_v former_o note_v now_o the_o rule_n that_o we_o must_v here_o observe_v concern_v these_o point_n wherein_o consent_n of_o father_n be_v and_o must_v necessary_o be_v have_v be_v that_o which_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n a_o author_n that_o i_o can_v never_o sufficient_o commend_v have_v excellent_o lay_v down_o in_o his_o 37._o chapter_n contra_fw-la haereses_fw-la his_o word_n be_v these_o antiqua_fw-la patrum_fw-la consentio_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la non_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la divinae_fw-la legis_fw-la quaestionibus_fw-la sed_fw-la solùm_fw-la in_o fidei_fw-la regula_fw-la magno_fw-la nobis_fw-la study_v &_o investiganda_fw-la &_o sequenda_fw-la est_fw-la the_o ancient_a consent_n of_o holy_a father_n be_v with_o great_a care_n and_o study_v to_o be_v both_o search_v out_o and_o follow_v of_o we_o not_o in_o all_o their_o questioning_n of_o holy_a writ_n but_o only_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 28._o and_o unto_o this_o s._n augustine_n allude_v where_o he_o write_v thus_o alia_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la interse_n aliquando_fw-la etiam_fw-la doctissimi_fw-la atque_fw-la optimi_fw-la regulae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la defensores_fw-la salua_fw-la fidei_fw-la compage_fw-la non_fw-la consonant_n &_o alius_fw-la alio_fw-la de_fw-la una_fw-la re_fw-la melius_fw-la aliquid_fw-la dicit_fw-la &_o veriùs_fw-la there_o be_v 2._o some_o thing_n wherein_o sometime_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o the_o best_a defender_n of_o the_o catholic_n rule_n do_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o but_o one_o speak_v better_a and_o more_o true_o than_o another_o of_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n but_o yet_o without_o breach_n of_o the_o link_n of_o faith_n 29._o but_o forasmuch_o as_o particular_a father_n do_v often_o time_n set_v down_o and_o deliver_v the_o public_a belief_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o any_o private_a opinion_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o speak_v private_o and_o not_o in_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n when_o they_o mention_v this_o or_o that_o point_n concern_v religion_n some_o certain_a rule_n or_o note_n for_o our_o better_a direction_n and_o faith_n distinction_n must_v be_v set_v down_o and_o the_o sure_a rule_n to_o discern_v how_o far_o forth_o private_a father_n opinion_n aught_o to_o be_v esteem_v or_o may_v bind_v a_o man_n in_o conscience_n be_v for_o a_o man_n to_o consider_v upright_o in_o the_o impartial_a judgement_n betwixt_o god_n and_o his_o own_o conscience_n whether_o that_o opinion_n of_o his_o if_o he_o be_v but_o one_o or_o they_o if_o they_o be_v many_o have_v be_v withstand_v or_o gainsay_v contradict_v or_o impugn_a by_o any_o other_o father_n or_o father_n synod_n or_o council_n provincial_a general_n or_o national_n of_o the_o same_o or_o other_o precedent_n or_o subsequent_a age_n for_o if_o this_o can_v be_v make_v good_a against_o any_o one_o particular_a father_n opinion_n then_o may_v it_o more_o than_o probable_o be_v infer_v that_o forsomuch_o as_o this_o particular_a father_n be_v general_o repute_v for_o a_o catholic_a doctor_n in_o his_o time_n never_o reprehend_v tax_v note_v condemn_v for_o this_o opinion_n as_o false_a doubtful_a or_o erroneous_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v i_o say_v necessary_o infer_v and_o conclude_v that_o that_o very_a opinion_n of_o his_o be_v the_o opinion_n judgement_n and_o doctrine_n also_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o age_n and_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v and_o of_o which_o he_o himself_o be_v then_o a_o father_n and_o doctor_n for_o if_o this_o be_v not_o so_o it_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o with_o any_o probability_n imagine_v that_o this_o father_n can_v have_v teach_v this_o opinion_n in_o his_o day_n or_o diwlge_v it_o in_o his_o write_n unto_o posterity_n without_o some_o note_n or_o memory_n of_o controlment_n or_o taxation_n of_o the_o same_o either_o whilst_o he_o live_v or_o after_o his_o death_n 30._o and_o hereby_o it_o follow_v that_o albeit_o this_o doctrine_n shall_v have_v but_o one_o or_o two_o ancient_a father_n that_o do_v express_o mention_v it_o in_o their_o day_n other_o father_n of_o the_o same_o time_n either_o not_o have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v thereof_o or_o else_o busy_v and_o encumber_v about_o other_o as_o weighty_a point_n yet_o be_v this_o alone_a sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o understand_v that_o in_o their_o day_n that_o mention_v the_o same_o the_o foresaid_a opinion_n of_o that_o father_n or_o father_n be_v hold_v for_o catholic_n doctrine_n &_o throughout_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o that_o otherwise_o without_o all_o doubt_n it_o will_v they_o or_o afterwards_o have_v be_v other_o descry_v &_o censure_v by_o the_o careful_a &_o vigilant_a watchman_n of_o god_n church_n neither_o can_v any_o instance_n as_o i_o imagine_v be_v give_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o that_o from_o the_o very_a first_o infancy_n of_o christianity_n unto_o our_o day_n it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o any_o father_n or_o doctor_n though_o otherwise_o never_o so_o renown_v for_o wit_n and_o learning_n piety_n or_o sanctity_n do_v ever_o begin_v any_o new_a doctrine_n or_o erroneous_a opinion_n different_a from_o the_o catholic_a belief_n but_o that_o present_o the_o same_o be_v except_v against_o by_o other_o and_o this_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a in_o the_o particular_a case_n and_o slip_v of_o tertullian_n origen_n cyprian_n lactamius_fw-la and_o other_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o when_o any_o of_o these_o transgress_v the_o ancient_a bound_n innovate_a any_o thing_n from_o the_o receive_v faith_n they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o except_v and_o cry_v out_o against_o note_v &_o tax_v for_o such_o their_o private_a &_o erroneous_a opinion_n as_o dissent_v from_o public_a union_n and_o catholic_n communion_n 31._o neither_o do_v any_o man_n in_o my_o judgement_n explain_v this_o point_n better_o than_o s._n augustine_n himself_o and_o therefore_o as_o i_o serve_v myself_o principal_o of_o he_o in_o the_o precedent_a consideration_n so_o do_v i_o mean_v also_o in_o this_o for_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n when_o many_o father_n do_v agree_v in_o their_o opinion_n against_o one_o or_o few_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o s._n cyprian_n about_o the_o rebaptise_v of_o heretic_n it_o fall_v out_o the_o great_a part_n be_v there_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o less_o as_o the_o say_a father_n do_v often_o affirm_v so_o notwithstanding_o when_o no_o such_o opposition_n and_o contradiction_n be_v of_o the_o mayor_n part_n s._n augustine_n himself_o make_v high_a and_o singular_a account_n of_o every_o private_a father_n opinion_n as_o namely_o when_o he_o extoll_v the_o authority_n o._n s._n 32._o hilarius_n against_o lulian_n save_v ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la acerrimum_fw-la
do_v conclude_v thus_o alibi_n verò_fw-la passim_fw-la cyprianus_n dicit_fw-la super_fw-la petrum_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la fundatam_fw-la esse_fw-la cyprian_n do_v ordinary_o in_o other_o place_n affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v sound_v upon_o peter_n as_o lib._n 1._o epist_n 3._o lib._n 4._o epist_n 9_o tract_n 2._o de_fw-la habitu_fw-la virginum_fw-la serm_fw-la 3._o de_fw-la bono_fw-mi patientiae_fw-la &_o epist_n ad_fw-la quirinum_fw-la 65._o and_o the_o same_o have_v origen_n say_v they_o tract_n 5._o in_o matth._n in_o these_o word_n petrus_n per_fw-la promissionem_fw-la meruit_fw-la fieri_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la et_fw-la homil_n 17._o super_fw-la lucam_fw-la petrum_fw-la vocat_fw-la apostolorun_n principem_fw-la peter_n by_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n deserve_v to_o be_v make_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o in_o his_o 17._o homily_n upon_o luke_n origen_n call_v s._n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n thus_o the_o magdeburgian_o be_v force_v to_o show_v the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n to_o be_v against_o themselves_o 66._o and_o now_o by_o this_o the_o prudent_a reader_n may_v judge_v what_o a_o volume_n i_o may_v make_v up_o if_o i_o shall_v here_o recyte_v all_o the_o authority_n which_o in_o this_o kind_n the_o magdeburgian_o 86._o do_v allege_v for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o general_a head_n touch_v in_o the_o forego_n age_n and_o the_o other_o here_o adjoin_v for_o thus_o they_o begin_v the_o article_n of_o martyrdom_n and_o merit_v thereof_o martyrium_fw-la immodicè_fw-la extulerunt_fw-la omnes_fw-la huius_fw-la aetatis_fw-la doctores_fw-la all_o the_o doctor_n and_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o mark_v that_o they_o say_v all_o of_o this_o age_n do_v extol_v martyrdom_n immoderate_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n they_o begin_v their_o article_n of_o chastity_n thus_o sicut_fw-la &_o in_fw-la superioris_fw-la saeculi_fw-la historia_fw-la it_o a_o &_o hic_fw-la inuenies_fw-la nimiùm_fw-la praedicari_fw-la &_o extolli_fw-la continentiam_fw-la as_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o former_a age_n so_o here_o shall_v you_o find_v continency_n to_o be_v over_o much_o commend_v and_o extol_v and_o thus_o much_o for_o these_o so_o many_o and_o so_o several_a point_n as_o before_o have_v be_v touch_v 67._o now_o let_v we_o add_v one_o article_n or_o head_n more_o of_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n discover_v by_o the_o same_o magdeburgian_o 85._o in_o the_o father_n of_o this_o three_o age_n not_o hitherto_o handle_v to_o wit_n the_o article_n of_o purgatory_n for_o thus_o they_o write_v semina_fw-la purgatoris_fw-la in_o aliquot_fw-la locis_fw-la apud_fw-la originem_fw-la subinde_fw-la sparsa_fw-la videas_fw-la you_o purgatory_n may_v see_v here_o and_o there_o the_o seed_n of_o purgatory_n sow_v in_o certain_a place_n of_o origin_n his_o work_n as_o homily_n the_o 2._o in_o psalm_n 36._o &_o homil_n 3._o in_o cumdem_n &_o homil_n 8._o in_o leviticum_fw-la &_o homil_n 12._o in_o ezechielem_n &_o in_o libro_fw-la primo_fw-la contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la &_o lib._n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cap._n 6._o and_o albeit_o the_o magdeburgian_o do_v call_v this_o but_o a_o strong_a imagination_n of_o origen_n yet_o i_o do_v consider_v this_o that_o among_o so_o many_o opinion_n reprehend_v and_o condemn_v in_o origen_n by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o subsequent_a age_n yet_o none_o do_v ever_o reprehend_v this_o his_o opinion_n of_o purgatory_n as_o a_o error_n of_o he_o but_o rather_o follow_v origen_n themselves_o hold_v the_o same_o as_o a_o catholic_a truth_n so_o as_o now_o the_o other_o head_n of_o roman_a catholic_a doctrine_n hold_v by_o the_o chief_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o two_o precedent_a age_n to_o wit_n about_o freewill_n perfection_n of_o life_n possibility_n of_o the_o commandment_n tradition_n and_o rite_n supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n merit_n of_o martyrdom_n state_n of_o virginity_n and_o the_o like_a here_o in_o this_o age_n the_o same_o head_n be_v not_o only_o confirm_v and_o ratify_v but_o as_o many_o more_o disclose_v as_o prayer_n unto_o angel_n justification_n by_o work_n penance_n and_o satisfaction_n intercession_n of_o martyr_n for_o sinner_n in_o this_o life_n sanctify_v the_o water_n of_o baptism_n by_o the_o priest_n necessity_n and_o efficacy_n of_o holy_a chrism_n sanctification_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n upon_o altar_n the_o form_n of_o invocation_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n purgatory_n and_o diverse_a other_o such_o like_a point_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n controverse_v i_o here_o for_o brevity_n sake_n do_v pass_v over_o hasten_v unto_o the_o four_o age_n the_o four_o age._n 68_o the_o four_o age_n of_o christ_n beginning_n from_o the_o year_n 400._o have_v for_o chief_a father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n s_o cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n s._n ephraim_n s._n basil_n s._n epiphanius_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n gregory_n nissen_n and_o many_o other_o as_o also_o the_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v s._n ambrose_n s._n hierome_n prudentius_n philastrius_n ruffinus_n and_o other_o in_o which_o age_n two_o principal_a point_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v here_o for_o our_o purpose_n first_o whether_o all_o the_o former_a catholic_a opinion_n that_o be_v discover_v in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o precedent_n age_n to_o be_v then_o hold_v by_o the_o church_n and_o father_n thereof_o be_v now_o confirm_v also_o in_o this_o four_o age_n and_o second_o whether_o any_o other_o point_n be_v further_o insinuate_v and_o inculcate_v touch_v the_o same_o doctrine_n 69._o and_o as_o for_o the_o first_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o low_a we_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o great_a confirmation_n and_o illustration_n upon_o occasion_n of_o heretical_a opposition_n shall_v we_o find_v of_o the_o same_o article_n as_o for_o example_n the_o magdeburgian_o have_v a_o chapter_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la 242._o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n wherein_o they_o do_v prove_v out_o of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n eusebius_n ambrose_n hieronymus_n hilarius_n arnobius_n basilius_n epiphanius_n and_o diverse_a other_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o this_o age_n the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o say_a supper_n which_o they_o hold_v to_o have_v be_v true_o and_o catholicke_o defend_v by_o they_o then_o pass_v over_o unto_o the_o other_o head_n which_o lie_v in_o controversy_n between_o we_o they_o do_v show_v to_o be_v hold_v also_o but_o as_o they_o say_v erroneous_o by_o the_o chief_a father_n of_o this_o four_o age_n no_o less_o then_o by_o those_o of_o the_o former_a age_n and_o then_o begin_v with_o the_o article_n of_o free_a will_n they_o say_v patres_fw-la omnes_fw-la huius_fw-la ferè_fw-la aetatis_fw-la de_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la confusè_fw-la loquuntur_fw-la all_o the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n do_v speak_v in_o a_o sort_n confuse_o of_o free_a will_n but_o howsoever_o the_o father_n speak_v confuse_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o magdeburgian_o speak_v and_o censure_v false_o and_o heretical_o according_a to_o their_o old_a wont_a 70._o and_o yet_o present_o after_o they_o make_v mention_n of_o lactantius_n athanasius_n basilius_n nazianzen_n epiphanius_n s._n hierome_n and_o s._n gregory_n man_n who_o speak_v as_o plain_o and_o distinct_o thereof_o as_o man_n may_v do_v and_o as_o it_o may_v possible_o be_v imagine_v demetriadem_n and_o not_o confuse_o let_v we_o hear_v s._n hierome_n speak_v in_o steed_n of_o all_o omni_fw-la aetati_fw-la say_v he_o omnique_fw-la personae_fw-la libertas_fw-la arbitrij_fw-la relicta_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la cogo_fw-la non_fw-la impero_fw-la sed_fw-la propono_fw-la palmam_fw-la ostendo_fw-la praemia_fw-la tuum_fw-la est_fw-la eligere_fw-la si_fw-la volueris_fw-la in_o ago_o &_o certamine_fw-la coronari_fw-la liberty_n of_o freewill_n be_v leave_v unto_o every_o age_n and_o unto_o all_o person_n god_n say_v i_o do_v not_o force_v i_o do_v not_o command_v but_o i_o do_v propose_v unto_o thou_o the_o crown_n and_o do_v show_v thou_o the_o reward_n it_o be_v thy_o part_n to_o choose_v if_o thou_o will_v win_v the_o crown_n in_o the_o fight_n and_o conflict_n so_o he_o 71._o and_o the_o very_a same_o point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v often_o time_n by_o he_o reassume_v reiterated_a and_o urge_v in_o incite_v man_n to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o evangelicall_a counsel_n where_o he_o use_v the_o self_n same_o word_n in_o many_o place_n of_o of_o his_o work_n the_o say_v magdeburgians_n do_v allege_v most_o plain_a and_o clear_a place_n and_o sentence_n forth_o of_o lactantius_n nilus_n chromatius_n ephraim_n and_o s._n hierome_n who_o teach_v plain_o that_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o only_a faith_n non_fw-la sufficit_fw-la murum_fw-la habere_fw-la fidei_fw-la nisi_fw-la ipsa_fw-la fides_fw-la bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la confirmetur_fw-la it_o be_v not_o say_v isaiam_n s._n hierome_n sufficient_a to_o have_v the_o wall_n of_o faith_n except_o that_o faith_n be_v confirm_v with_o good_a work_n 72._o and_o as_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n the_o magdeburgian_o do_v open_o confess_v that_o both_o the_o
dutiful_a and_o respective_a consideration_n upon_o four_o several_a head_n of_o proof_n and_o trial_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n propose_v by_o the_o high_a and_o mighty_a prince_n james_n king_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n and_o ireland_n etc._n etc._n in_o his_o late_a book_n of_o premonition_n to_o all_o christian_a prince_n for_o clear_v his_o royal_a person_n from_o the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n by_o a_o late_a minister_n and_o preacher_n in_o england_n august_n lib._n contrae_fw-la judaeos_fw-la pagan_a &_o arian_n cap._n 20._o you_o must_v know_v dear_a brethren_n that_o true_a faith_n sincere_a peace_n &_o perpetual_a salvation_n be_v only_o by_o the_o catholic_a faith_n for_o it_o be_v not_o in_o a_o corner_n but_o every_o where_o all_o if_o any_o man_n depart_v from_o it_o and_o deliver_v himself_o up_o to_o the_o error_n of_o heretic_n he_o shall_v be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v as_o a_o fugitive_n bondman_n permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la m._n dc_o ix_o the_o four_o head_n of_o just_a trial_n mention_v by_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n as_o touch_v his_o own_o person_n 1._o the_o reverence_v and_o believe_v of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o so_o also_o the_o not_o canonical_a 2._o the_o admit_v of_o the_o first_o three_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n &_o of_o s._n athanasius_n 3._o the_o acknowledge_v &_o accept_v the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n of_o christendom_n to_o wit_n of_o nice_a of_o constantinople_n of_o ephesus_n &_o of_o chalcedon_n 4._o the_o credit_v of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n either_o joint_o or_o several_o in_o point_n of_o modern_a controversy_n every_o head_n be_v handle_v by_o diverse_a consideration_n as_o by_o the_o sequent_a catalogue_n of_o chapter_n will_v appear_v the_o general_n content_v of_o this_o book_n the_o epistle_n to_o his_o majesty_n declare_v the_o motive_n which_o the_o author_n have_v to_o write_v this_o treatise_n the_o first_o chapter_n contain_v a_o entrance_n into_o this_o treatise_n or_o trial_n how_o much_o it_o import_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o no_o heretic_n and_o with_o how_o great_a reason_n his_o majesty_n endeavour_v to_o clear_v himself_o and_o his_o royal_a person_n from_o the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n five_o consideration_n 1_o about_o the_o word_n catholic_a and_o heretic_n and_o that_o they_o can_v never_o agree_v in_o one_o 2_o of_o the_o dreadful_a misery_n of_o be_v a_o heretic_n 3_o how_o a_o man_n may_v certain_o and_o without_o error_n discern_v what_o be_v catholic_a and_o what_o be_v heretical_a 4_o how_o out_o of_o the_o premise_n every_o man_n may_v judge_v in_o what_o state_n he_o stand_v for_o be_v heretic_n or_o catholic_a 5_o the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o this_o whole_a chapter_n to_o his_o majesty_n the_o second_o chapter_n that_o treat_v the_o first_o head_n touch_v by_o his_o majesty_n for_o trial_n of_o a_o christian_a catholic_a which_o be_v the_o believe_a of_o holy_a scripture_n four_o consideration_n 1_o the_o believe_v of_o scripture_n not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o catholic_n 2_o that_o scripture_n be_v not_o write_v for_o many_o year_n after_o the_o church_n begin_v 3_o how_o to_o know_v what_o be_v true_o scripture_n 4_o how_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n may_v be_v try_v the_o three_o chapter_n concern_v the_o second_o point_n or_o general_a head_n profess_v by_o his_o majesty_n concern_v his_o believe_v of_o the_o three_o creed_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n three_o consideration_n 1_o how_o the_o first_o three_o creed_n and_o why_o they_o be_v ordain_v and_o how_o great_o they_o be_v to_o be_v reverence_v 2_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n believe_v not_o whole_o &_o entire_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o three_o creed_n 3_o in_o what_o particular_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n english_a protestant_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o us._n the_o four_o chapter_n concern_v the_o approbation_n &_o allowance_n of_o the_o first_o sour_a general_a counsel_n which_o be_v the_o three_o general_a head_n of_o trial_n offer_v &_o propose_v by_o his_o excellent_a majesty_n of_o england_n three_o consideration_n 1_o why_o and_o how_o these_o four_o first_o counsel_n be_v gather_v and_o how_o thereby_o it_o be_v convince_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v 2_o why_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o nor_o can_v remedy_v their_o division_n by_o any_o general_n or_o national_n council_n 3_o particular_a point_n of_o difference_n between_o these_o first_o four_o general_n counsel_n and_o the_o protestant_n of_o our_o time_n for_o doctrine_n &_o manner_n the_o five_o chapter_n concern_v the_o admittance_n &_o acceptance_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o four_o &_o last_o head_n of_o trial_n offer_v &_o allege_v by_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n three_o consideration_n 1_o the_o different_a esteem_n that_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n do_v make_v of_o ancient_a father_n when_o they_o agree_v in_o one_o 2_o how_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n do_v esteem_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o particular_a father_n 3_o that_o the_o father_n of_o every_o age_n for_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n do_v make_v for_o catholic_n &_o against_o protestant_n in_o matter_n now_o in_o controversy_n the_o six_o chapter_n contain_v a_o brief_a contemplation_n of_o what_o hitherto_o have_v be_v say_v with_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a to_o his_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o the_o high_a and_o pvissant_a prince_n my_o dread_a lord_n and_o sovereign_a james_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n &_o ireland_n king_n etc._n etc._n after_o i_o have_v bend_v myself_o unto_o a_o serious_a survey_v and_o diligent_a perusal_n of_o your_o majesty_n new_a book_n bear_v the_o inscription_n of_o a_o preface_n or_o premonition_n to_o all_o christian_a prince_n diverse_a be_v the_o apprehension_n and_o impression_n it_o make_v in_o the_o different_a faculty_n of_o my_o soul_n revolve_v therefore_o and_o reflect_v upon_o the_o premise_n by_o a_o second_o review_v i_o resolve_v and_o in_o fine_a conclude_v be_v now_o as_o it_o be_v wonderful_o affect_v partly_o with_o solace_n partly_o with_o solicitude_n 2._o my_o solace_n be_v to_o consider_v yea_o sensible_o as_o it_o be_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o my_o soul_n in_o the_o impartial_a glass_n of_o my_o recollectedst_a understanding_n and_o most_o retire_v judgement_n to_o behold_v so_o many_o rare_a princely_a talent_n of_o nature_n literature_n and_o other_o high_o esteem_v part_n in_o your_o majesty_n which_o as_o they_o be_v seldom_o find_v in_o such_o potent_a prince_n so_o reside_v habitual_o in_o your_o royal_a breast_n as_o in_o their_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a subject_n they_o can_v but_o minister_v just_a matter_n of_o marvellous_a joy_n content_n and_o comfort_n unto_o all_o your_o liege_n people_n your_o loyal_a and_o love_a subject_n especial_o since_o they_o be_v accompany_v and_o attend_v yea_o adorn_v nay_o beautify_v with_o the_o irradiant_a lustre_n of_o that_o burn_a fire_n of_o zeal_n i_o mean_v a_o extraordinary_a fervour_n in_o matter_n of_o your_o religion_n now_o if_o these_o so_o rare_a part_n of_o nature_n literature_n and_o zeal_n wherewith_o your_o noble_a person_n be_v habitual_o invest_v shall_v be_v direct_v by_o the_o singer_n of_o god_n his_o holy_a spirit_n &_o the_o high_a hand_n of_o heaven_n unto_o the_o sole-sacred_n and_o soule-saving_a knowledge_n of_o catholic_a religion_n which_o i_o very_o hope_v in_o time_n to_o see_v and_o shall_v incessant_o pray_v for_o they_o will_v exceed_o advance_v his_o glory_n and_o gain_v unto_o your_o majesty_n a_o immarcessible_a &_o never-fading_a crown_n of_o eternity_n 3._o my_o spirit_n also_o rejoice_v within_o i_o my_o hart_n exult_v for_o joy_n &_o my_o perplex_a thought_n retire_v &_o repose_v themselves_o in_o hope_n when_o i_o take_v but_o a_o just_a view_n of_o that_o commendable_a careful_a diligence_n that_o pious_a and_o religious_a industry_n use_v by_o your_o majesty_n in_o vindieat_v your_o noble_a person_n from_o the_o least_o imputation_n of_o herefy_v and_o in_o remove_v the_o very_a suspicion_n of_o such_o a_o contagious_a and_o soul_n quess_v leprosy_n since_o that_o this_o loud-crying_a sin_n loud-crying_a in_o the_o ear_n of_o heaven_n be_v the_o great_a crime_n that_o can_v be_v commit_v against_o god_n or_o his_o church_n separate_v betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n grace_n and_o the_o soul_n dissolve_v the_o mysterial_a 2._o union_n and_o sacramental_a communion_n betwixt_o the_o head_n &_o the_o member_n christ_n &_o his_o spouse_n reject_v god_n for_o father_n deny_v the_o church_n for_o mother_n take_v away_o the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o christian_a as_o ancient_a tertullian_n speak_v deprive_v our_o expectation_n of_o all_o hope_n and_o
so_o much_o as_o we_o hear_v on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o terrible_a horror_n of_o the_o say_a name_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o see_v the_o common_a and_o to_o much_o use_v familiaryty_n thereof_o in_o these_o our_o unhappy_a time_n late_a and_o worse_a day_n which_o be_v so_o replenish_v with_o all_o kind_n of_o sect_n and_o sectary_n as_o that_o each_o one_o common_o call_v the_o other_o heretic_n and_o that_o with_o as_o great_a facility_n and_o with_o as_o little_a regard_n as_o if_o the_o accustomable_a practice_n of_o call_v heretic_n have_v take_v away_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o real_a feel_n of_o a_o heretic_n or_o as_o though_o he_o call_v he_o good_a fellow_n or_o witty_a inventor_n of_o new_a opinion_n which_o among_o the_o sectary_n of_o our_o age_n be_v rather_o repute_v for_o a_o pleasant_a jest_n and_o ingenious_a commendation_n then_o for_o that_o which_o in_o sober_a sadness_n set_v all_o atheistical_a scoff_a and_o jest_n in_o matter_n of_o such_o moment_n a_o part_n it_o be_v to_o wit_n a_o terrible_a accusation_n and_o dreadful_a charge_n of_o a_o most_o high_a and_o capital_a crime_n commit_v against_o god_n his_o church_n his_o saviour_n and_o all_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n 28._o but_o alas_o who_o do_v not_o now_o adays_o delight_n and_o esteem_v himself_o the_o more_o for_o his_o sharpness_n of_o wit_n &_o subtle_a ingeny_n for_o invent_v find_v out_o devise_v frame_v new_a position_n new_a translation_n new_a interpretation_n and_o that_o coin_a &_o stamp_v in_o the_o shop_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n thereby_o of_o set_a purpose_n to_o impugn_v and_o of_o desperate_a malice_n to_o withstand_v some_o catholic_n point_n of_o ancient_a church_n doctrine_n and_o if_o you_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o must_v keep_v he_o to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v that_o to_o the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v uniform_o receive_v from_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o must_v not_o remove_v ancient_a band_n in_o matter_n of_o belief_n for_o fear_n of_o a_o curse_n that_o he_o must_v reddere_fw-la depositum_fw-la as_o s._n paul_n charge_v timothy_n and_o that_o with_o a_o vehement_a 20._o asseveration_n and_o what_o be_v that_o reddere_fw-la depositum_fw-la that_o be_v as_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n excellent_o expound_v it_o quod_fw-la tibi_fw-la creditum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la à_fw-la te_fw-la inventum_fw-la quod_fw-la accepisti_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la excogitasti_fw-la haereses_fw-la rem_fw-la non_fw-la ingenij_fw-la sed_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la non_fw-la usurpationis_fw-la privatae_fw-la sed_fw-la publicae_fw-la traditionis_fw-la rem_fw-la ad_fw-la te_fw-la perductam_fw-la non_fw-la a_o te_fw-la prolatam_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la author_n esse_fw-la debes_fw-la sed_fw-la custos_fw-la non_fw-la institutor_fw-la sed_fw-la sectator_n non_fw-la ducens_fw-la sed_fw-la sequens_fw-la that_o which_o be_v commit_v unto_o thou_o not_o any_o thing_n invent_v of_o thou_o that_o which_o thou_o have_v receive_v not_o devise_v a_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n not_o of_o wit_n not_o of_o private_a usurpation_n but_o of_o public_a tradition_n a_o matter_n bring_v unto_o thou_o not_o bring_v forth_o of_o thou_o wherein_o thou_o must_v be_v no_o author_n but_o a_o keeper_n no_o master_n but_o a_o scholar_n no_o guider_n but_o a_o follower_n last_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o must_v content_v praf_n himself_o with_o be_v a_o relator_n only_o not_o presume_v to_o be_v a_o author_n otherwise_o his_o position_n will_v prove_v innovation_n private_a invention_n erroneous_a election_n and_o consequent_o heresy_n i_o say_v tell_v he_o all_o this_o and_o what_o more_o you_o can_v devise_v and_o he_o will_v laugh_v at_o you_o for_o your_o simplicity_n in_o go_v about_o to_o terrify_v he_o with_o such_o bug_n and_o in_o tie_v his_o spirit_n to_o any_o rule_n of_o church-authority_n since_o the_o wind_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v etc._n etc._n which_o he_o fanatical_o apply_v unto_o his_o spirit_n presume_v it_o to_o be_v inspire_v from_o above_o and_o with_o that_o spirit_n if_o you_o will_v believe_v he_o upon_o his_o bare_a word_n be_v he_o so_o inspire_v that_o he_o need_v no_o other_o direction_n no_o further_a instruction_n and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o 8._o account_n that_o he_o make_v of_o be_v a_o catholic_a or_o a_o choose_n heretic_n but_o reflect_v upon_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n which_o may_v true_o and_o only_o be_v call_v catholic_a i_o experimental_o find_v another_o kind_n of_o reckon_v make_v of_o both_o these_o word_n catholic_a and_o heretic_n most_o high_o esteem_v the_o one_o as_o have_v be_v former_o speak_v and_o fearful_o decline_v the_o other_o as_o the_o origin_n and_o offspring_n of_o all_o calamity_n 26._o and_o first_o i_o find_v in_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o their_o school_n they_o assign_v heresy_n for_o one_o of_o the_o three_o species_n 6._o or_o member_n of_o infidelity_n opposite_a to_o christian_a religion_n they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v the_o worst_a &_o most_o heinous_a of_o all_o three_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o extreme_a and_o desperate_a malice_n thereof_o to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v in_o a_o degree_n of_o evil_a and_o sin_n worse_o and_o more_o damnable_a than_o either_o paganism_n or_o judaism_n not_o for_o that_o all_o heresy_n deny_v more_o part_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n then_o do_v the_o pagan_n or_o jew_n for_o in_o this_o the_o pagan_a i_o sin_v more_o than_o a_o jew_n and_o a_o jew_n common_o more_o than_o a_o heretic_n but_o because_o they_o do_v corrupt_a and_o impugn_v the_o catholic_a christian_a faith_n which_o once_o they_o receive_v and_o from_o which_o they_o be_v now_o wilful_o depart_v which_o imply_v more_o malice_n than_o can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o either_o jew_n or_o gentile_n that_o never_o receive_v the_o same_o in_o which_o respect_n their_o sin_n and_o damnation_n be_v more_o grievous_a say_v catholic_a doctor_n then_o be_v either_o of_o the_o other_o two_o whereupon_o be_v infer_v by_o s._n thomas_n and_o it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n that_o a_o heretic_n be_v in_o worse_a state_n than_o a_o jew_n or_o gentile_a for_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 30._o again_o for_o further_a aggravation_n and_o exaggeration_n of_o the_o horror_n of_o this_o name_n and_o loud-crying_a sin_n thereby_o signify_v the_o catholic_a divine_n in_o a_o more_o particular_a explication_n do_v constant_o and_o with_o uniform_a consent_n aver_v that_o a_o heretic_n discredit_v or_o not_o believe_v as_o he_o shall_v any_o one_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n do_v loose_v his_o whole_a faith_n and_o habit_n thereof_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v assign_v by_o the_o school_n doctor_n for_o that_o the_o chief_a motive_n or_o formal_a reason_n why_o a_o man_n do_v cred●●di_fw-la believe_v any_o thing_n in_o christian_a religion_n be_v because_o it_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o propound_v by_o the_o church_n without_o which_o church_n propound_v and_o approve_v nothing_o can_v be_v secure_o believe_v and_o therefore_o when_o a_o heretic_n in_o any_o one_o article_n discredit_v and_o detract_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o church_n which_o be_v necessary_a and_o primary_n condition_n in_o belief_n deny_v it_o thereby_o to_o be_v a_o infallible_a rule_n of_o belief_n in_o this_o one_o article_n he_o deny_v the_o same_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n as_o for_o example_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v ask_v a_o protestant_n why_o he_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o s._n matthews_n gospel_n to_o be_v s._n matthews_n gospel_n he_o can_v answer_v no_o otherwise_o but_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o church_n which_o propound_v these_o book_n for_o scripture_n here_o then_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o church_n appertain_v to_o the_o formal_a reason_n or_o cause_n of_o belief_n as_o devyne_n do_v term_v it_o which_o if_o once_o it_o be_v deny_v or_o discredit_v in_o any_o one_o article_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v when_o we_o allege_v it_o against_o they_o for_o purgatory_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a sacrifice_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o like_a then_o can_v it_o not_o hold_v in_o the_o former_a about_o scripture_n or_o any_o other_o why_o article_n and_o consequent_o heretic_n have_v no_o divyne_a faith_n at_o all_o about_o scripture_n or_o any_o other_o article_n but_o be_v mere_a infidel_n in_o all_o and_o consequent_o shall_v be_v damn_v say_v they_o not_o only_o as_o choose_v heretic_n believe_v one_o thing_n and_o reject_v the_o other_o but_o as_o unbelieved_n infidel_n devoid_a of_o all_o faith_n which_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v a_o very_a terrible_a commination_n and_o fearful_a distriction_n and_o yet_o do_v i_o see_v it_o substantial_o ground_v and_o so_o orderly_o deduce_v as_o that_o i_o must_v ingenuous_o confess_v it_o so_o convince_a my_o understanding_n and_o
so_o order_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o they_o minister_v store_n of_o matter_n unto_o heretic_n when_o i_o read_v in_o scripture_n oportet_fw-la haereses_fw-la esse_fw-la there_o must_v be_v heresy_n which_o can_v be_v without_o scripture_n and_o this_o 39_o be_v my_o former_a author_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o scripture_n wrest_v and_o pervert_v by_o several_a heretic_n in_o his_o day_n for_o maintenance_n of_o their_o several_a heresy_n which_o be_v so_o here_o be_v neither_o certainty_n nor_o generality_n nor_o facility_n nor_o perspicuity_n nor_o infallibility_n in_o this_o way_n of_o the_o scripture_n bare_o and_o naked_o propose_v of_o itself_o alone_o neither_o can_v it_o ever_o be_v infer_v by_o any_o seem_a probable_a conclusion_n that_o the_o scripture_n alone_o be_v this_o infallible_a way_n which_o we_o do_v further_o illustrate_v by_o this_o familiar_a example_n obvious_a unto_o every_o man_n capacity_n 56._o if_o some_o rude_a and_o unlearned_a countryman_n repair_v up_o to_o the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o prosecute_v some_o suit_n in_o law_n touch_v a_o farm_n or_o house_n or_o matter_n of_o less_o moment_n it_o these_o man_n i_o say_v after_o conference_n have_v with_o their_o learned_a counsel_n shall_v receive_v no_o other_o answer_n nor_o comfort_n nor_o direction_n of_o they_o for_o further_o manage_n of_o their_o suit_n but_o be_v remit_v by_o they_o unto_o the_o body_n of_o the_o law_n itself_o without_o any_o judge_n or_o counsailour_n they_o be_v of_o themselves_o not_o able_a either_o to_o read_v or_o understand_v the_o law_n much_o less_o to_o apply_v it_o to_o their_o example_n proper_a case_n and_o peculiar_a suit_n will_v not_o every_o reasonable_a and_o conscionable_a man_n condemn_v these_o lawyer_n and_o have_v not_o the_o poor_a countryman_n themselves_o be_v undo_v by_o this_o mean_n in_o their_o worldly_a estate_n just_a cause_n to_o complain_v and_o cry_v out_o against_o the_o falsehood_n and_o treachery_n of_o their_o counsellor_n and_o yet_o behold_v here_o in_o a_o suit_n of_o of_o suit_n and_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n and_o importance_n in_o the_o world_n not_o in_o a_o title_n or_o trial_n of_o a_o farm_n or_o house_n but_o concern_v our_o interest_n and_o right_n of_o inheritance_n unto_o the_o heavenly_a mansion_n we_o be_v this_o way_n worse_o than_o thus_o since_o the_o matter_n be_v of_o far_o great_a importance_n abuse_v delude_v betray_v we_o be_v promiscuous_o send_v learned_a unlearned_a man_n woman_n young_a old_a to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o mystical_a volume_n of_o god_n his_o sacred_a and_o seaven-fold-sealed_n book_n as_o s._n john_n speak_v of_o the_o revelation_n apocal._n 5._o 1._o we_o must_v seek_v search_n confer_v compare_v expound_v interpret_v every_o man_n must_v there_o be_v a_o chooser_n every_o woman_n a_o expositor_n and_o every_o creature_n must_v be_v his_o own_o carver_n all_o must_v presume_v of_o the_o spirit_n that_o they_o can_v err_v all_o presume_v to_o be_v teach_v immediate_o from_o god_n without_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n sola_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la arse_a say_v s._n hierome_n against_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n quam_fw-la omnes_fw-la sibi_fw-la vendicant_a hanc_fw-la garrula_fw-la anus_fw-la hanc_fw-la delirus_fw-la senex_fw-la hanc_fw-la sophista_fw-la verbosus_fw-la hanc_fw-la universi_fw-la praesumunt_fw-la lacerant_fw-la docent_fw-la antequam_fw-la discunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n only_o the_o art_n of_o scripture_n be_v it_o presb._n which_o every_o one_o challenge_v to_o himself_o this_o the_o prate_a old_a wife_n this_o the_o dote_a old_a man_n this_o the_o babble_a sophist_n this_o all_o of_o they_o together_o presume_v to_o know_v and_o teach_v and_o tear_v in_o piece_n before_o they_o learn_v it_o so_o he_o scripture_n and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o way_n and_o ground_n prescription_n direction_n rule_n and_o line_n that_o our_o heretical_a sectary_n can_v afford_v we_o for_o the_o guide_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o ground_v of_o our_o faith_n will_v any_o man_n therefore_o hereafter_o that_o have_v but_o the_o least_o care_n or_o that_o can_v entertain_v but_o one_o thought_n either_o of_o the_o present_a of_o future_a wellfarre_o of_o his_o soul_n rely_v upon_o such_o false_a guide_n &_o blind_a teacher_n since_o this_o ground_n of_o scripture_n alone_o sense_v by_o a_o private_a spirit_n be_v be_v &_o ever_o shall_v be_v the_o common_a ground_n nay_o rather_o desperate_a shift_n and_o refuge_n of_o all_o condemn_a heresy_n and_o heretic_n and_o that_o purposely_o that_o they_o may_v avoid_v the_o censure_n and_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n 57_o there_o follow_v then_o the_o way_n indeed_o appoint_v by_o god_n reveal_v by_o the_o holy-ghost_n design_v by_o christ_n church_n and_o propose_v by_o the_o catholic_n and_o catholic_a church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o sure_a easy_a evident_a general_a and_o infallible_a way_n indeed_o which_o be_v the_o universal_a know_a catholic_a church_n in_o every_o age_n which_o be_v perspicuous_a and_o notorious_a easy_a to_o be_v find_v for_o that_o it_o can_v be_v hide_v it_o be_v compare_v by_o holy_a scripture_n to_o a_o city_n place_v upon_o a_o hill_n as_o s._n augustine_n in_o diverse_a prolix_a treatise_n of_o he_o do_v evident_o 4._o demonstrate_v it_o be_v a_o light_n upon_o a_o candlestick_n it_o lighten_v all_o through_o the_o egyptian_a darkness_n of_o this_o world_n schism_n and_o heresy_n and_o lead_v their_o soul_n into_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v that_o pillar_n of_o fire_n that_o lead_v all_o god_n choose_a people_n through_o the_o vast_a and_o roar_a wilderness_n yea_o and_o all_o the_o night_n darkness_n of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o promise_a land_n of_o canaan_n i_o mean_v the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n it_o be_v general_o also_o figure_v by_o the_o dew_n that_o fall_v upon_o the_o floor_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o the_o fleece_n when_o gedeon_n require_v the_o miracle_n to_o be_v double_v which_o be_v a_o mystical_a representation_n of_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n and_o christian_a congregation_n imply_v also_o that_o the_o dew_n of_o god_n truth_n and_o save_a grace_n shall_v at_o last_o pass_v 12._o from_o the_o fleece_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o floor_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o all_o to_o teach_v we_o that_o this_o catholic_n christian_n church_n shall_v extend_v to_o all_o serve_v for_o all_o learned_a unlearned_a young_a 40._o old_a high_a low_a great_a small_a for_o that_o all_o sort_n sex_n age_n and_o condition_n of_o people_n may_v repair_v unto_o she_o receive_v her_o doctrine_n admit_v her_o instruction_n and_o direction_n by_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o her_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o every_o age_n and_o final_o this_o way_n be_v a_o most_o sure_a certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n for_o that_o christ_n have_v express_o assure_v and_o promise_v we_o that_o he_o will_v be_v continual_o with_o this_o church_n unto_o the_o world_n end_n that_o he_o will_v send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o instruct_v direct_v and_o induce_v this_o church_n in_o omnem_fw-la veritatem_fw-la into_o all_o truth_n &_o suggerit_fw-la vobis_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la dixere_fw-la vobis_fw-la and_o it_o shall_v suggest_v unto_o you_o all_o that_o i_o will_v from_o heaven_n speak_v or_o notify_v unto_o you_o it_o be_v christ_n his_o promise_n unto_o his_o apostle_n &_o in_o their_o person_n unto_o his_o church_n for_o ever_o and_o last_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n which_o be_v the_o gate_n of_o error_n and_o heresy_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o this_o 18._o church_n 58._o this_o then_o to_o exclude_v all_o bypath_n and_o blind_a way_n of_o heretic_n be_v the_o way_n indeed_o this_o be_v that_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o tertullian_n speak_v institute_v by_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v such_o a_o rule_n and_o so_o certain_a that_o nullas_fw-la habet_fw-la apud_fw-la nos_fw-la quaestiones_fw-la nisi_fw-la quae_n haereses_fw-la inserunt_fw-la &_o quae_fw-la haereticos_fw-la saciunt_fw-la no_o question_n be_v 14_o so_o much_o as_o move_v with_o we_o concern_v this_o rule_n but_o such_o as_o heresy_n cause_n and_o which_o very_a question_n move_v concern_v the_o church_n do_v cause_n and_o breed_v heretic_n 59_o this_o church_n be_v once_o publish_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o promise_n he_o have_v make_v unto_o her_o be_v once_o diwlge_v what_o follow_v but_o that_o all_o man_n present_o that_o have_v any_o care_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n flock_v unto_o she_o begin_v to_o lay_v handfast_a and_o houldfast_n on_o this_o way_n and_o to_o have_v recourse_n in_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n unto_o the_o common_a know_a catholic_a church_n of_o their_o age_n for_o explication_n and_o final_a decision_n thereof_o so_o shall_v you_o read_v act._n 15_o 6._o that_o the_o apostle_n immediate_o after_o the_o ascension_n church_n of_o our_o saviour_n assemble_v the_o church_n together_o for_o the_o detide_n of_o that_o
and_o universal_a direction_n can_v any_o rule_n be_v more_o probable_a and_o infallible_a than_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o this_o do_v agree_v both_o my_o foresay_a author_n in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n as_o also_o all_o that_o succeed_v he_o &_o take_v the_o like_a enterprise_n in_o hand_n of_o writing_n and_o prescribe_v against_o heretic_n as_o tertullian_n s._n cyprian_n s._n augustine_n s._n athanasius_n epiphanius_n theodoret_n s._n hierome_n s._n leo_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n in_o his_o golden_a book_n against_o the_o profane_a innovation_n of_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n and_o diverse_a other_o which_o to_o avoid_v prolixity_n i_o omit_v all_o these_o do_v principal_o and_o real_o provoke_v and_o challenge_v all_o the_o heretic_n of_o their_o time_n unto_o this_o only_a and_o sure_a way_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o their_o day_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o discern_v what_o be_v true_o catholic_a and_o what_o be_v heretical_a their_o several_a sentence_n be_v to_o prolix_a to_o be_v contain_v within_o the_o strict_a precinct_n and_o narrow_a bound_n of_o my_o brief_a intend_a consideration_n 63._o and_o now_o to_o put_v a_o period_n to_o this_o my_o three_o consideration_n lest_o it_o exceed_v a_o due_a proportion_n the_o upshot_n be_v this_o for_o asmuch_o then_n as_o this_o visible_a christian_a church_n begin_v and_o found_v by_o our_o saviour_n under_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o visible_a church_n make_v and_o consist_v of_o visible_a man_n govern_v by_o visible_a pastor_n have_v visible_o descend_v from_o age_n to_o age_n through_o the_o century_n of_o the_o church_n by_o all_o lawful_a and_o ordinary_a succession_n of_o bishop_n which_o tertullian_n videsupr_fw-la require_v of_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n as_o they_o will_v avoid_v the_o blot_n of_o heresy_n that_o have_v lineal_o come_v down_o to_o our_o day_n second_o for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o church_n be_v esteem_v in_o every_o age_n to_o be_v the_o same_o for_o infallible_a direction_n that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o former_a first_o age_n through_o the_o assurance_n of_o christ_n his_o promise_n to_o that_o effect_n and_o last_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n of_o the_o fifteen_o age_n have_v in_o a_o general_a council_n examine_v decide_v conden_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n for_o heresy_n in_o more_o than_o a_o hundred_o main_a point_n by_o name_n &_o have_v accurse_v and_o anathematise_v consideration_n both_o they_o and_o all_o their_o participant_n to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n &_o that_o according_a to_o the_o very_a self_n same_o ground_n whereby_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v use_v to_o curse_v &_o anathematise_v all_o old_a heresy_n and_o heretic_n in_o former_a time_n these_o thing_n when_o i_o consider_v with_o more_o attention_n &_o make_v a_o general_a reflection_n thereon_o a_o sudden_a fear_n and_o care_n astonish_v yea_o as_o it_o be_v overwhelm_v i_o for_o that_o my_o everlasting_a salvation_n depend_v upon_o this_o point_n i_o have_v be_v so_o negligent_a in_o examine_v the_o premise_n and_o now_o i_o plain_o see_v as_o in_o a_o perfect_a glass_n of_o most_o impartial_a judgement_n that_o unless_o i_o can_v imagine_v with_o myself_o as_o diverse_a other_o fanatical_o do_v that_o christ_n promise_n have_v fail_v &_o that_o the_o first_o visible_a christian_a and_o catholic_a church_n found_v by_o he_o and_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v fail_v vanish_v and_o perish_v as_o be_v overcome_v by_o helgate_n and_o over_o grow_v with_o the_o weed_n of_o error_n &_o heresy_n i_o can_v never_o have_v any_o hope_n of_o salvation_n as_o long_o as_o i_o continue_v in_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o this_o be_v the_o issue_n of_o that_o consideration_n the_o four_o consideration_n there_o remain_v now_o a_o four_o consideration_n the_o subject_n whereof_o which_o notwithstanding_o perhaps_o be_v catholic_a of_o great_a importance_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v this_o to_o wit_n how_o out_o of_o the_o premise_n a_o man_n may_v probable_o collect_v nay_o necessary_o conclude_v who_o opinion_n be_v catholic_a and_o who_o heretical_a and_o thereupon_o may_v reflect_v upon_o himself_o in_o what_o state_n or_o condition_n he_o stand_v betwixt_o both_o as_o either_o affect_v to_o the_o one_o or_o interest_v in_o the_o other_o and_o albeit_o this_o have_v be_v partly_o discover_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v in_o the_o first_o consideration_n touch_v the_o name_n catholic_a that_o signify_v universal_a and_o whole_a and_o not_o a_o part_n or_o singularity_n in_o opinion_n by_o choice_n of_o a_o man_n own_o will_n and_o judgement_n for_o so_o heretic_n do_v signify_v as_o have_v be_v lay_v forth_o in_o the_o second_o consideration_n yet_o shall_v it_o be_v make_v more_o manifest_a by_o the_o particular_a practice_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o when_o the_o name_n shall_v pass_v into_o nature_n and_o appellation_n be_v turn_v into_o application_n and_o first_o to_o speak_v to_o the_o point_n in_o a_o word_n the_o catholic_a admit_v all_o whole_o and_o entire_o without_o addition_n or_o detraction_n which_o the_o know_a catholic_a church_n propose_v to_o be_v believe_v of_o her_o son_n as_o she_o have_v it_o reveal_v unto_o she_o from_o god_n her_o father_n but_o as_o for_o the_o heretic_n and_o the_o chooser_n tamquam_fw-la dominus_fw-la propryiuris_fw-la as_o he_o that_o will_v take_v his_o own_o swing_n though_o it_o be_v in_o schism_n and_o heresy_n he_o make_v himself_o judge_n over_o all_o i_o mean_v god_n the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n admit_v some_o and_o reject_v the_o rest_n as_o it_o please_v his_o private_a fancy_n or_o displease_v his_o peevish_a judgement_n he_o neither_o respect_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o regard_v his_o own_o obedience_n due_a thereunto_o his_o ground_n be_v either_o scripture_n false_o by_o he_o interpret_v or_o a_o private_a lie_a spirit_n such_o as_o micheas_n the_o lord_n true_a prophet_n prophesy_v to_o be_v in_o the_o false_a prophet_n of_o baal_n wherein_o he_o be_v delude_v or_o other_o argument_n of_o reason_n &_o nature_n against_o 22._o faith_n and_o the_o god_n of_o nature_n and_o thus_o he_o be_v bewitch_v &_o pervert_v contrary_a to_o all_o true_a and_o only_o save_v catholic_a ground_n contrary_a to_o that_o sure_a certain_a and_o infallible_a way_n of_o trial_n which_o erst_o while_o we_o treat_v of_o in_o the_o three_o consideration_n and_o purpose_n now_o by_o god_n holy_a assistance_n to_o make_v use_n of_o all_o in_o this_o 65._o some_o man_n i_o find_v to_o entertain_v this_o concepit_fw-la that_o english_a protestant_n and_o roman_a catholic_n may_v live_v in_o their_o several_a profession_n of_o religion_n and_o be_v save_v together_o and_o much_o more_o they_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o all_o protestant_n of_o different_a profession_n and_o sect_n as_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n and_o much_o more_o the_o different_a sort_n of_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o sect_n as_o caluinist_n in_o england_n distinguish_v by_o the_o name_n of_o molles_n and_o rigidi_fw-la moderate_a protestant_n religion_n and_o fervent_a puritan_n and_o the_o reason_n for_o this_o their_o opinion_n be_v first_o of_o doctrine_n for_o that_o every_o one_o of_o their_o difference_n do_v not_o make_v heresy_n or_o if_o they_o do_v yet_o not_o so_o grievous_a heresy_n as_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n condemn_v and_o anathematise_v they_o mean_v such_o heresy_n as_o impugn_a the_o person_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n the_o nature_n of_o christ_n god_n and_o man_n the_o incarnation_n and_o passion_n and_o the_o like_a &_o consequent_o though_o those_o ancient_a heresy_n be_v damnable_a yet_o be_v not_o those_o of_o our_o day_n plead_v the_o protestant_n but_o that_o both_o part_n live_v well_o may_v be_v save_v as_o his_o majesty_n in_o this_o his_o premonition_n to_o prince_n do_v testify_v that_o his_o noble_a mother_n send_v he_o word_n not_o long_o before_o her_o martyrdom_n by_o the_o master_n of_o her_o household_n a_o scotish_n gentleman_n yet_o live_v that_o his_o majesty_n may_v persist_v in_o his_o 34._o protestant_a religion_n and_o yet_o do_v well_o enough_o if_o he_o live_v virtuous_o and_o govern_v according_o 66._o but_o sure_o how_o far_o the_o credit_n of_o that_o master_n of_o household_n be_v a_o protestant_n as_o i_o hear_v he_o then_o be_v meluin_n and_o now_o be_v may_v extend_v itself_o to_o be_v believe_v against_o the_o mistress_n and_o high_a lady_n of_o that_o household_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o that_o quality_n and_o consequence_n i_o know_v not_o yet_o certain_a i_o be_o of_o this_o that_o the_o opinion_n that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v so_o save_v be_v most_o false_a and_o absurd_a in_o itself_o and_o very_o unlikely_a also_o to_o proceed_v from_o her_o
majesty_n wise_a and_o religious_a hart_n who_o with_o that_o opinion_n may_v have_v make_v herself_o a_o protestant_n &_o thereby_o have_v escape_v the_o great_a part_n of_o her_o trouble_n and_o perhaps_o also_o have_v avoid_v the_o violent_a stroke_n of_o the_o axe_n which_o be_v well_o know_v to_o have_v be_v urge_v upon_o she_o especial_o in_o respect_n of_o her_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n that_o be_v conceyve_v least_o in_o time_n she_o may_v come_v to_o the_o crown_n and_o defend_v the_o same_o i_o mean_v her_o religion_n with_o public_a authority_n 67._o and_o now_o whosoever_o it_o be_v wherein_o i_o remit_v myself_o to_o his_o majesty_n as_o most_o interest_v therein_o both_o in_o honour_n body_n and_o soul_n as_o her_o only_a child_n and_o heir_n &_o chief_a jewel_n in_o the_o world_n evident_a it_o be_v the_o opinion_n can_v stand_v as_o now_o have_v be_v say_v either_o in_o reason_n or_o religion_n and_o may_v be_v presume_v to_o proceed_v from_o such_o as_o have_v little_a care_n of_o any_o religion_n at_o all_o only_o they_o will_v live_v quiet_o enjoy_v their_o sensuality_n pass_v the_o time_n without_o any_o trouble_n or_o scruple_n or_o repugnant_a conscience_n for_o any_o thing_n atheism_n touch_v religion_n or_o that_o whole_a subject_n and_o this_o if_o i_o take_v not_o my_o aim_n amiss_o come_v very_o near_o to_o the_o point_n of_o secret_a atheism_n 68_o s._n augustine_n record_v the_o like_a opinion_n of_o many_o in_o his_o day_n who_o think_v it_o do_v not_o material_o import_v they_o whether_o they_o be_v donatist_n or_o catholic_n so_o as_o they_o profess_v the_o christian_a faith_n multi_fw-la say_v he_o nihil_fw-la interest_n vincent_n credentes_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la cuique_fw-la parte_fw-la christianus_n sit_v ideo_fw-la permanebant_fw-la in_o parte_fw-la donati_n quia_fw-la ibi_fw-la nati_fw-la erant_fw-la etc._n etc._n many_o believe_v that_o it_o concern_v they_o not_o in_o what_o side_n or_o part_v each_o man_n be_v a_o christian_a so_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a therefore_o they_o remain_v on_o the_o party_n or_o faction_n of_o donatus_n the_o heretic_n for_o that_o they_o be_v bear_v therein_o but_o s._n augustine_n vehement_o confute_v this_o false_a pestilent_a and_o indulgent_a persuasion_n aswell_o in_o the_o place_n here_o cite_v as_o in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n confident_o teach_v and_o aver_n that_o a_o man_n be_v make_v a_o heretic_n by_o hold_v any_o one_o error_n obstinate_o against_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o damn_v also_o in_o ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la say_v he_o qui_fw-la morbidum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la prawmque_fw-la sapiunt_fw-la si_fw-la correcti_fw-la ut_fw-la sanum_fw-la rectumque_fw-la sapiant_fw-la resistunt_fw-la 5●_n contumaciter_fw-la haeretici_fw-la fiunt_fw-la &_o foras_fw-la exeuntes_fw-la habentur_fw-la inimici_fw-la those_o who_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v infect_v with_o corrupt_a and_o naughty_a opinion_n if_o be_v admonish_v to_o believe_v wholesome_a and_o true_a doctrine_n they_o kick_v against_o it_o with_o contumacy_n then_o do_v they_o become_v heretic_n and_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n be_v hold_v for_o enemy_n so_o he_o and_o with_o the_o same_o severity_n hold_v he_o in_o his_o book_n of_o heresy_n entitle_v ad_fw-la quod-vult-deum_a that_o the_o believe_v of_o any_o one_o heresy_n condemn_v already_o by_o the_o church_n or_o to_o be_v condemn_v if_o rise_v afterward_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v the_o believer_n &_o obstinate_a defender_n no_o christian_n catholic_a &_o consequent_o a_o heretic_n &_o so_o impossible_a to_o be_v save_v 69._o to_o this_o opinion_n subscribe_v s._n cyprian_n who_o show_v that_o every_o least_o heresy_n or_o schism_n be_v able_a to_o damn_v a_o man_n that_o adher_v unto_o it_o write_v express_o thus_o beatus_fw-la joannes_n apostolus_fw-la nec_fw-la ipse_fw-la ullam_fw-la haeresim_fw-la aut_fw-la schisma_fw-la discrevit_fw-la sed_fw-la magn._n universos_fw-la qui_fw-la ex_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la exijssent_fw-la antichristos_n appellavit_fw-la s._n john_n the_o apostle_n himself_o do_v not_o put_v any_o difference_n or_o exception_n of_o any_o heresy_n or_o schism_n at_o all_o but_o call_v they_o antichrist_n whosoever_o be_v go_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n for_o any_o heresy_n or_o schism_n whatsoever_o 70._o and_o yet_o this_o point_n be_v press_v further_o by_o many_o other_o holy_a father_n yea_o strain_v to_o every_o heresy_n be_v it_o but_o in_o one_o word_n or_o syllable_n and_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o medium_n s._n hierome_n his_o word_n be_v these_o propter_fw-la unum_fw-la verbum_fw-la aut_fw-la duo_fw-la quae_fw-la contraria_fw-la essent_fw-la fidei_fw-la multas_fw-la haereses_fw-la eiectas_fw-la esse_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la we_o shall_v read_v that_o many_o heresy_n have_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o one_o or_o two_o word_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o receive_v faith_n 71._o to_o this_o purpose_n conduce_v that_o of_o s._n basill_n register_v by_o theodoret_n to_o wit_n that_o a_o good_a man_n ought_v to_o loose_v his_o life_n if_o need_v require_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o one_o only_a syllable_n pro_fw-la 17._o desensione_n unius_fw-la syllabae_fw-la divinorum_fw-la dogmatum_fw-la the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v touch_v as_o well_o by_o s._n athanasius_n in_o his_o creed_n where_o he_o say_v that_o he_o shall_v most_o certain_o be_v damn_v that_o hould_v not_o entire_o and_o inviolable_o the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n as_o also_o by_o nazianzen_n when_o he_o say_v that_o heresy_n consist_v sometime_o in_o one_o word_n initio_fw-la his_o word_n be_v these_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o perilcus_fw-la then_o heretic_n who_o run_v whole_o over_o all_o do_v notuill_a stand_n in_o some_o one_o word_n as_o by_o a_o drop_n of_o poison_n infect_v the_o sincere_a &_o simple_a faith_n of_o our_o saviour_n come_v down_o by_o apostolical_a tradition_n this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o antiquity_n so_o severe_a censurer_n be_v all_o those_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o least_o dram_n of_o heresy_n 72._o thus_o than_o you_o apparent_o see_v that_o for_o make_v of_o a_o error_n or_o heresy_n damnable_a it_o be_v not_o require_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n that_o it_o deny_v some_o thing_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n direct_o or_o some_o main_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n etc._n etc._n as_o many_o of_o the_o first_o old_a heresy_n do_v when_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v not_o so_o well_o explain_v as_o now_o it_o be_v though_o this_o be_v a_o desperate_a shift_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o most_o miserable_a evasion_n and_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n he_o be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n in_o all_o those_o high_a point_n yea_o &_o of_o misbelief_n almost_o in_o every_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n for_o that_o as_o before_o have_v be_v touch_v in_o the_o three_o consideration_n the_o greatness_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o heresy_n depend_v more_o of_o malice_n and_o malignity_n damnable_a of_o the_o sinner_n then_o of_o the_o material_a object_n about_o which_o the_o heretic_n err_v for_o that_o he_o sin_v of_o obstinacy_n and_o contumacy_n by_o his_o own_o choice_n and_o therefore_o be_v say_v by_o s._n paul_n to_o be_v damn_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n quia_fw-la eligit_fw-la sibi_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la damnatur_fw-la say_v tertullian_n he_o choose_v to_o himself_o wherein_o to_o be_v damn_v or_o else_o as_o s._n leo_n do_v more_o eutich_n large_o give_v the_o gloss_n propria_fw-la pertinacia_fw-la perit_fw-la &_o sua_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la discedit_fw-la in_o sania_fw-la qui_fw-la eam_fw-la impietatem_fw-la per_fw-la quam_fw-la multos_fw-la ante_fw-la se_fw-la scit_fw-la perusse_n sectatur_fw-la &_o religiosum_fw-la atque_fw-la catholicum_fw-la putat_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la iudicio_fw-la damnatum_fw-la esse_fw-la constat_fw-la that_o be_v he_o perish_v by_o his_o own_o pertinacity_n and_o through_o his_o own_o peculiar_a madness_n depart_v from_o christ_n who_o embrace_v that_o impiety_n which_o he_o know_v have_v be_v the_o destruction_n of_o many_o hold_v that_o for_o religious_a and_o catholic_n which_o manifest_o appear_v to_o be_v condemn_v by_o uniform_a judgement_n of_o ancient_a father_n so_o bless_a leo_n expound_v the_o place_n the_o reason_n follow_v for_o that_o such_o a_o one_o prefer_v himself_o by_o pride_n and_o vanity_n before_o the_o whole_a visible_a and_o catholic_a church_n he_o choose_v to_o hold_v that_o which_o his_o own_o judgement_n and_o fancy_n do_v lead_v he_o unto_o whence_o it_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o one_o man_n err_v with_o less_o pride_n and_o obstinacy_n about_o some_o point_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n may_v sin_v less_o damnable_o than_o another_o that_o err_v in_o point_n of_o lesser_a moment_n but_o with_o more_o malice_n as_o about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o other_o point_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n and_o the_o reason_n thereof_o be_v for_o that_o this_o second_o err_v with_o more_o obstinacy_n and_o malice_n which_o corroborate_v the_o
very_a essence_n of_o heresy_n than_o the_o first_o though_o both_o of_o these_o man_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v damn_v but_o yet_o with_o different_a measure_n of_o punishment_n 73._o this_o fearful_a conclusion_n then_o of_o damnation_n stand_v a_o foot_n and_o remain_v in_o full_a force_n to_o be_v inflict_v upon_o all_o kind_n of_o heretic_n we_o be_v now_o and_o next_o to_o consider_v whether_o the_o protestant_n opinion_n at_o this_o day_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o catholic_n be_v true_o heresy_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o religion_n and_o second_o we_o be_v to_o discuss_v whether_o the_o different_a sort_n sect_n and_o profession_n of_o the_o say_v protestant_a religion_n among_o themselves_o especial_o the_o principal_a as_o lutheran_n &_o sacramentary_n in_o germany_n be_v heresy_n to_o the_o other_o and_o the_o like_a of_o puritan_n and_o protestant_n in_o england_n all_o original_o rise_v from_o martin_n luther_n i_o say_v we_o be_v to_o consider_v whether_o all_o these_o several_a head_n be_v heretic_n indeed_o the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o or_o may_v be_v save_v together_o each_o man_n die_v in_o his_o own_o religion_n 74._o to_o proceed_v then_o in_o order_n unto_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o particular_n and_o first_o that_o protestant_a religion_n in_o many_o great_a point_n throughout_o the_o main_n corpse_n of_o controversy_n now_o in_o hand_n be_v true_o heresy_n to_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a heresy_n faith_n and_o catholic_n religion_n this_o point_n be_v so_o clear_o need_v no_o further_a dispute_n for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o protestant_n do_v open_o avouch_v above_o a_o hundred_o position_n against_o the_o same_o roman_n catholic_n church_n defend_v the_o same_o with_o obstinate_a resolution_n and_o the_o late_a general_a council_n of_o trent_n where_o the_o flower_n piety_n and_o learning_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a christian_n world_n under_o one_o spreame_a pastor_n and_o infallible_a conduct_n of_o god_n his_o holy_a spirit_n be_v assemble_v have_v discuss_v examine_v according_a to_o ancient_a ground_n of_o holy_a father_n discover_v for_o heretical_a and_o thereupon_o have_v anathematise_v 125._o point_n by_o name_n and_o that_o in_o so_o many_o different_a canon_n enact_v concern_v the_o sacrament_n only_o and_o the_o controversy_n of_o justification_n beside_o all_o the_o rest_n i_o say_v the_o case_n be_v thus_o clear_a against_o they_o and_o their_o conviction_n so_o manifest_a there_o need_v no_o further_a dispute_n for_o if_o by_o s._n augustine_n his_o judgement_n even_o now_o allege_v and_o other_o father_n of_o great_a learning_n and_o credit_n in_o the_o church_n one_o only_a erroneous_a proposition_n or_o assertion_n hold_v with_o obstinacy_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o know_v christian_a church_n be_v convince_v for_o a_o point_n of_o heresy_n and_o hold_v for_o a_o matter_n of_o most_o certain_a damnation_n to_o the_o houlder_n for_o that_o it_o cast_v a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o say_a church_n out_o of_o which_o be_v no_o salvation_n what_o be_v to_o be_v infer_v where_o so_o many_o condenned_a assertion_n be_v hold_v against_o the_o know_a church_n &_o authority_n thereof_o 75._o to_o the_o second_o also_o to_o wit_n whether_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n who_o make_v the_o first_o division_n of_o protestant_n whilst_o luther_n himself_o be_v yet_o alive_a be_v true_o and_o proper_o heretic_n the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o consequent_o that_o the_o salvation_n of_o one_o be_v the_o damnation_n of_o the_o other_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o any_o sectary_n can_v be_v save_v this_o be_v with_o as_o great_a facility_n prove_v as_o the_o former_a and_o that_o first_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o martin_n luther_n himself_o the_o original_a author_n of_o all_o these_o late_a sect_n and_o then_o by_o the_o mutual_a and_o concur_v consent_n of_o all_o the_o lutheran_n doctor_n pastor_n and_o prelate_n that_o succeed_v he_o 76._o first_o i_o say_v it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o luther_n himself_o ever_o repute_v the_o sacramentary_n that_o comprehend_v both_o zwinglians_n and_o caluinist_n for_o dammnable_a and_o intolerable_a heretic_n let_v his_o own_o testification_n often_o reiterated_a and_o serious_o aggravate_v in_o diverse_a of_o his_o book_n be_v a_o sufficient_a confirmation_n of_o this_o his_o first_o serious_a censure_n denounce_v against_o they_o all_o be_v this_o haereticos_fw-la seriò_fw-la censemus_fw-la &_o alienos_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la zuinglianos_fw-la sacramentarios_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la negant_fw-la christi_fw-la lovaniens_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la ore_fw-la carnali_fw-la sumi_fw-la in_o venerabili_fw-la eucharistia_n we_o do_v serious_o censure_v for_o heretic_n and_o alien_n from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o zwinglians_n and_o all_o other_o sacramentary_n who_o do_v deny_v that_o christ_n sacred_a body_n and_o heretic_n blood_n be_v receive_v by_o our_o carnal_a mouth_n in_o the_o venerable_a eucharist_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o clear_o or_o determine_v more_o effectual_o than_o this_o or_o can_v any_o caluinist_n with_o any_o face_n hereafter_o exempt_v himself_o from_o out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o be_v accurse_v and_o condemn_v by_o their_o own_o grand_a progenitor_n 77._o the_o same_o in_o effect_n he_o have_v in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la jacobum_fw-la presbyterum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la bremensis_n his_o word_n be_v these_o all_o sacramentary_n that_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n be_v heretic_n and_o for_o such_o to_o be_v avoid_v and_o yet_o in_o a_o three_o place_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v he_o have_v alter_v his_o judgement_n de_fw-la coena_fw-la domini_fw-la of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o condemn_v by_o name_n for_o damn_a heretic_n the_o very_a first_o author_n of_o sacramentary_a doctrine_n to_o wit_n carolostadius_fw-la oecolampadius_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o questionless_a calvin_n have_v never_o escape_v his_o singer_n as_o sly_a a_o heretic_n as_o he_o be_v have_v he_o be_v then_o either_o of_o name_n or_o note_v well_o his_o final_a and_o irrevokable_a doom_n for_o it_o be_v denounce_v against_o they_o in_o his_o decrepit_a age_n be_v this_o ego_fw-la tamquam_fw-la alterum_fw-la pedem_fw-la iam_fw-la habens_fw-la in_o sepulchro_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o be_v now_o old_a and_o have_v as_o it_o be_v one_o foot_n in_o my_o grave_n do_v yet_o carry_v this_o testimony_n &_o glory_n with_o i_o to_o the_o tribunal_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o with_o all_o my_o hart_n i_o have_v condemn_v as_o enemy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n carolostadius_fw-la zuinglius_fw-la and_o oecolampadius_n and_o all_o their_o disciple_n and_o follower_n and_o have_v avoid_v their_o company_n &_o have_v no_o familiarity_n with_o they_o either_o by_o letter_n write_n word_n or_o deed_n as_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v not_o to_o have_v with_o heretic_n thus_o much_o of_o luther_n himself_o 78._o and_o now_o if_o we_o shall_v prosecute_v the_o several_a iudgmente_n and_o censure_n of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o learned_a lutheran_n against_o sacramentary_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o heresy_n and_o namely_o against_o caluiniste_n who_o be_v of_o no_o reckon_n in_o luther_n day_n for_o that_o their_o new_a heresy_n be_v but_o then_o a_o hatch_n there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n and_o i_o shall_v rather_o fill_v a_o large_a volume_n then_o contain_v myself_o with_o in_o the_o precinct_n of_o my_o brief_a intend_a consideration_n let_v one_o or_o two_o of_o the_o principal_n serve_v for_o all_o mathias_n illyricus_n a_o great_a lutheran_n superintendent_n of_o saxony_n and_o one_o of_o those_o four_o that_o compile_v the_o lie_a century_n do_v in_o a_o certain_a book_n entitle_v desensio_fw-la consessionis_fw-la martinistarum_fw-la or_o luther_n anorum_fw-la censure_n caluinistarum_fw-la lyturgiam_fw-la the_o lyturgy_n or_o service_n of_o the_o caluinist_n not_o only_o for_o heretical_a but_o to_o be_v sacrilegious_a also_o et_fw-la proh_o dolour_n say_v he_o innumeras_fw-la animas_fw-la aeterno_fw-la exitio_fw-la involuere_fw-la and_o to_o involve_v alas_o innumerable_a soul_n with_o everlasting_a perdition_n 79._o franciscus_n stancarus_n also_o no_o mean_a author_n one_o of_o the_o lutheran_n side_n write_v to_o the_o king_n of_o polonia_n in_o his_o day_n pronounce_v confident_o of_o all_o those_o new_a professor_n under_o calvin_n in_o geneva_n that_o they_o be_v publici_fw-la &_o manifesti_fw-la haeretici_fw-la notorious_a and_o manifest_a heretic_n and_o yet_o as_o though_o this_o be_v little_a the_o same_o author_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la prescribe_v this_o caveat_n to_o the_o christian_a reader_n concern_v calvin_n and_o will_v to_o god_n it_o be_v as_o well_o remember_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o university_n of_o england_n where_o young_a divine_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n poison_v with_o the_o drug_n and_o dregs_n of_o calvin_n doctrine_n my_o hart_n bleed_v to_o think_v of_o it_o before_o they_o can_v taste_v of_o the_o pure_a liquor_n of_o
calvin_n antiquity_n well_o the_o admonition_n be_v this_o cave_n christiane_n lector_fw-la etc._n etc._n beware_v christian_a reader_n of_o the_o book_n of_o john_n calvin_n especial_o in_o the_o article_n of_o trinity_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o mediator_n of_o baptism_n of_o predestination_n etc._n etc._n for_o that_o they_o do_v contain_v most_o impious_a and_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n so_o he_o whereby_o be_v understand_v not_o only_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o lutheran_n church_n concern_v the_o caluinist_n lutheran_n doctrine_n but_o also_o in_o what_o article_n the_o difference_n betwixt_o they_o do_v principal_o consist_v and_o these_o be_v neither_o few_o in_o number_n nor_o mean_v in_o nature_n as_o you_o see_v confirm_v by_o the_o particular_a exception_n which_o article_n be_v reiterated_a by_o other_o lutheran_n writer_n as_o namely_o by_o albertus_n graverus_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v the_o war_n of_o john_n calvin_n with_o jesus_n christ_n which_o book_n be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o christ._n redemption_n 1598._o wherein_o he_o show_v that_o the_o article_n whereby_o the_o lutheran_n do_v chief_o differ_v from_o the_o caluinist_n heretical_a doctrine_n be_v of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n of_o baptism_n and_o of_o predestination_n and_o jacobus_n halbruneir_v another_o lutheran_n doctor_n publish_v a_o other_o book_n the_o same_o year_n before_o to_o prove_v caluinisme_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o to_o the_o former_a article_n of_o albertus_n he_o add_v other_o two_o wherein_o lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n do_v deep_o dissent_v which_o be_v de_fw-fr maiestate_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o ministerio_fw-la verbi_fw-la whereby_o he_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o caluinist_n be_v true_o and_o proper_o heretic_n to_o lutheran_n and_o this_o for_o the_o second_o point_n 80._o it_o rest_v now_o that_o i_o come_v unto_o the_o three_o rank_n of_o english_a protestant_n and_o puritan_n which_o be_v two_o different_a sect_n of_o calvin_n doctrine_n which_o be_v find_v together_o in_o no_o state_n or_o kingdom_n perhaps_o of_o christendom_n but_o only_o in_o england_n and_o although_o some_o protestant_a writer_n for_o dissemble_v their_o own_o division_n when_o they_o deal_v with_o other_o catholic_n will_v needs_o forsooth_o acknowledge_v they_o for_o brethren_n as_o not_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o any_o substantial_a point_n of_o doctrine_n yet_o in_o all_o their_o other_o write_n either_o against_o they_o or_o of_o they_o they_o disclose_v plain_o what_o they_o think_v of_o each_o other_o hold_v they_o both_o for_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o protestant_a church_n which_o be_v presume_v by_o they_o as_o they_o must_v needs_o presume_v to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a catholic_a church_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o puritan_n who_o from_o their_o innermost_a soul_n detest_v the_o same_o and_o the_o communion_n thereof_o as_o antichristian_a must_v needs_o be_v sectary_n nay_o heretic_n to_o that_o church_n and_o this_o be_v consonant_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o these_o scripture_n and_o most_o conformable_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o ancient_a father_n as_o be_v before_o copious_o in_o the_o precedent_a consideration_n assever_v 82._o for_o confirmation_n of_o which_o dissension_n capital_a and_o real_a hostility_n between_o our_o puritan_n and_o protestant_n in_o sundry_a main_n point_v of_o their_o religion_n i_o may_v here_o allege_v and_o produce_v infinite_a authoritye_n and_o innumerable_a argument_n if_o i_o shall_v not_o surcharge_n my_o treatise_n the_o two_o book_n yet_o extant_a print_v by_o public_a authority_n in_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o year_n i_o mean_v the_o survey_v of_o the_o holy_a pretend_a discipline_n compile_v as_o it_o be_v think_v by_o he_o that_o be_v now_o arrive_v to_o the_o high_a pitch_n of_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n in_o that_o kingdom_n and_o the_o other_o bear_v the_o inscription_n of_o dangerous_a position_n ascribe_v to_o doctor_n sutcliffe_n both_o of_o they_o receyve_v press_n at_o london_n by_o john_n wolf_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1593._o do_v sufficient_o notify_v unto_o the_o world_n how_o reconciliable_a the_o puritan_n position_n be_v with_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o that_o in_o sundry_a article_n of_o great_a weight_n and_o moment_n and_o among_o many_o other_o which_o to_o avoid_v prelixity_n i_o purposely_o omit_v the_o title_n of_o the_o 22._o and_o 23._o chapter_n of_o the_o survey_v be_v these_o that_o they_o to_o wit_n the_o puritan_n do_v take_v from_o christian_a prince_n &_o ascribe_v unto_o their_o pretend_a regiment_n the_o supreme_a and_o immediate_a authority_n under_o christ_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o in_o the_o oppugn_a theros_n do_v join_v with_o the_o papist_n whereupon_o i_o infer_v that_o if_o this_o spiritual_a supremacy_n be_v any_o substantial_a point_n of_o doctrine_n among_o the_o protestant_n than_o the_o obstinate_a repugnance_n thereof_o by_o the_o puritan_n must_v needs_o be_v schism_n and_o heresy_n 82._o i_o pretermit_v diverse_a other_o book_n whereof_o i_o have_v be_v a_o eye_n witness_n how_o purposely_o and_o direct_o they_o treat_v of_o these_o matter_n as_o namely_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o vicechancelor_n &_o doctor_n of_o oxford_n unto_o the_o petition_n of_o a_o 1000_o puritan_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1603._o wherein_o it_o be_v plain_o convince_v that_o the_o puritan_n hold_v their_o platform_n of_o ecclesiastical_a 20._o government_n of_o the_o government_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n for_o a_o thing_n of_o no_o less_o importance_n then_o be_v the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ._n they_o hold_v it_o further_o for_o a_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o say_a gospel_n for_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v receive_v upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n for_o a_o essential_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n without_o the_o which_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v no_o church_n their_o faith_n no_o faith_n their_o gospel_n no_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o conform_v to_o that_o which_o m._n rogers_n write_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o bishop_n article_n where_o he_o testify_v that_o the_o puritan_n do_v hold_v their_o platform_n differ_v from_o the_o protestant_n to_o be_v a_o special_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n yea_o the_o very_a gospel_n itself_o &_o to_o be_v of_o such_o importance_n as_o if_o every_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n be_v a_o life_n they_o ought_v to_o afford_v they_o all_o in_o defence_n thereof_o so_o they_o and_o in_o sober_a sadness_n suppose_v their_o principle_n to_o be_v true_a have_v they_o not_o great_a reason_n for_o that_o their_o difference_n be_v in_o so_o main_a &_o very_a substantial_a point_n if_o we_o refere_v they_o to_o their_o head_n whereof_o there_o be_v extant_a a_o very_a substantial_a declaration_n and_o conviction_n as_o to_o i_o it_o seem_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o catholic_a divine_a in_o his_o answer_n to_o sir_n edward_n cook_n five_o part_n of_o report_n whither_o i_o refer_v the_o ingenious_a &_o judicious_a reader_n for_o further_a perusal_n of_o this_o point_n for_o there_o it_o be_v show_v and_o irrefragable_o against_o all_o impugner_n thereof_o prove_v how_o essential_a and_o substantial_a difference_n of_o doctrine_n there_o be_v about_o the_o origin_n church_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o authority_n between_o the_o protestant_n puritan_n and_o catholic_n of_o england_n the_o one_o that_o be_v the_o protestant_n ascribe_v it_o to_o their_o temporal_a prince_n the_o other_o challenge_v it_o as_o most_o proper_o pertain_v to_o their_o private_a conventicle_n &_o assembly_n the_o last_o &_o three_o to_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n the_o consequence_n whereof_o be_v this_o that_o whosoever_o of_o the_o three_o party_n have_v the_o right_n in_o this_o point_n there_o only_o be_v the_o true_a church_n there_o alone_o be_v the_o true_a ecclesiastiall_a authority_n of_o preach_v teach_v or_o deign_v minister_n administer_a sacrament_n exercise_v censure_n and_o jurisdiction_n bind_v or_o lose_v remit_v or_o retain_v sin_n and_o the_o like_a etc._n etc._n and_o for_o the_o other_o two_o church_n they_o do_v remain_v as_o secular_a and_o profane_a congregation_n without_o any_o vital_a spirit_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n at_o all_o let_v they_o then_o contend_v never_o so_o much_o about_o the_o key_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n yet_o the_o plain_a truth_n be_v they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o open_v or_o shut_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n unto_o their_o own_o friend_n or_o against_o their_o enemy_n 83._o and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o puritan_n also_o in_o their_o plea_n do_v persuade_v themselves_o to_o have_v the_o right_n on_o their_o side_n church_n they_o must_v needs_o infer_v the_o other_o consequence_n against_o the_o protestant_a church_n hold_v it_o to_o be_v no_o church_n as_o the_o foresay_a answer_n of_o oxford_n doctor_n pag._n 15._o do_v confess_v that_o the_o brownist_n do_v ancrre_o
against_o they_o say_v the_o brownist_n do_v confident_o reproach_v we_o that_o our_o church_n be_v no_o church_n our_o sacrament_n no_o sacrament_n our_o prince_n and_o people_n infidel_n as_o not_o be_v baptize_v at_o all_o our_o christian_a congregation_n profane_a multitude_n etc._n etc._n thus_o write_v they_o animate_v as_o say_v these_o answerer_n by_o the_o millenary_a puritan_n petitioner_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v probable_o presume_v that_o they_o also_o to_o wit_n the_o say_v thousand_o petitioner_n in_o most_o point_n at_o least_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n 84._o these_o thing_n be_v so_o as_o no_o man_n of_o modesty_n can_v deny_v my_o demand_n be_v how_o can_v these_o man_n differ_v in_o so_o main_n a_o point_n be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n or_o how_o can_v any_o man_n of_o the_o mean_a understanding_n so_o he_o have_v any_o capacity_n at_o all_o imagine_v how_o these_o and_o the_o protestant_n can_v be_v save_v together_o nay_o true_o the_o book_n entitle_v the_o picture_n of_o a_o puritan_n licence_v to_o come_v forth_o by_o authority_n anno_fw-la 1605._o contain_v a_o comparison_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n in_o germany_n with_o those_o protestant_n of_o the_o puritan_n in_o england_n in_o dialogue_n wise_a between_o a_o english_a man_n and_o a_o german_a this_o book_n i_o say_v do_v pregnant_o prove_v that_o the_o protestant_n do_v hold_v the_o puritan_n not_o only_o for_o schismatickes_n and_o sectary_n but_o for_o heretic_n also_o as_o the_o anabaptist_n be_v yea_o the_o author_n hold_v they_o far_o worse_a than_o the_o anabaptist_n your_o ana_n baptist_n say_v he_o come_v not_o near_o to_o our_o puritan_n in_o pride_n and_o contempt_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o he_o proceed_v in_o compare_v and_o parallel_v they_o as_o well_o in_o their_o opinion_n and_o use_v of_o sacrament_n as_o in_o many_o other_o point_n of_o religion_n with_o the_o say_a anabaptist_n most_o damn_a heretic_n as_o all_o english_a protestant_n themselves_o general_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v yea_o this_o author_n call_v o._n o._n emanuel_n aggravate_v the_o point_n so_o much_o against_o they_o that_o he_o compare_v they_o with_o jew_n and_o other_o such_o like_a infidel_n and_o every_o where_o throughout_o his_o whole_a discourse_n detect_v and_o censure_v they_o for_o obstinate_a and_o wicked_a sectary_n and_o final_o to_o waste_v no_o more_o labour_n in_o a_o matter_n so_o clear_a i_o find_v they_o ipso_fw-la sacto_fw-la excommunicate_v by_o many_o constitution_n &_o canon_n ecclesiastical_a of_o the_o bishop_n and_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n 12._o as_o namely_o for_o impugn_v their_o church_n as_o also_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n establish_v in_o the_o say_a church_n for_o deny_v the_o authority_n of_o their_o archbishop_n bishop_n their_o consecrate_v and_o order_v of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n for_o deny_v of_o dean_n &_o collegiate_n church_n for_o be_v author_n of_o schism_n and_o separate_v themselves_o as_o schismatickes_n for_o maynteyn_v of_o constitution_n make_v in_o conventicle_n and_o the_o like_a 75._o and_o to_o conclude_v every_o where_o almost_o throughout_o the_o same_o constitution_n they_o be_v sharp_o censure_v for_o sectary_n and_o schismatic_n which_o censure_n proceed_v from_o the_o protestant_a church_n with_o so_o full_a a_o stroke_n of_o authority_n must_v of_o necessity_n in_o their_o own_o judgement_n deprive_v the_o other_o of_o all_o mean_n of_o salvation_n in_o that_o church_n they_o stand_v out_o with_o pertinacy_n against_o the_o same_o as_o they_o do_v &_o consequent_o this_o doom_n must_v needs_o fall_v upon_o one_o of_o their_o head_n that_o the_o protestant_n and_o they_o can_v in_o no_o case_n be_v save_v together_o the_o five_o consideration_n with_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o whole_a chapter_n to_o his_o majesty_n now_o therefore_o to_o return_v with_o all_o humble_a obedience_n &_o loyalty_n unto_o your_o majesty_n contain_v myself_o within_o all_o due_a and_o just_a bound_n of_o duty_n fidelity_n observance_n obedience_n subjection_n and_o submission_n which_o either_o the_o law_n of_o god_n of_o nature_n of_o nation_n reason_n religion_n or_o of_o my_o own_o native_a country_n can_v require_v of_o a_o subject_n towards_o his_o dread_a sovereign_n i_o do_v even_o from_o my_o innermost_a and_o hearty_a affection_n implore_v this_o one_o thing_n of_o your_o say_a excellency_n and_o must_v ever_o persist_v to_o beg_v it_o at_o your_o highness_n hand_n to_o wit_n that_o after_o these_o foresay_a premise_a consideration_n to_o the_o reader_n your_o own_o princely_a person_n will_v deign_v to_o condescend_v to_o enter_v into_o some_o serious_a consideration_n and_o mature_a deliberation_n and_o that_o with_o some_o earnest_a attention_n within_o the_o secret_a closet_n of_o your_o own_o most_o wise_a judicious_a and_o understand_v hart_n what_o be_v and_o may_v be_v the_o great_a consequence_n of_o all_o this_o that_o have_v be_v hither_o so_o general_o discourse_v of_o in_o the_o main_n body_n of_o the_o whole_a as_o also_o to_o weigh_v &_o ponder_v the_o weight_n and_o importance_n of_o each_o particular_a treat_v and_o infer_v in_o their_o several_a passage_n 87._o and_o first_o may_v it_o please_v your_o highness_n to_o lay_v together_o heretic_n and_o compare_v the_o several_a part_n and_o distinct_a pertye_n of_o different_a profession_n in_o religion_n all_o dissent_v from_o the_o english_a protestant_a church_n and_o doctrine_n therein_o establish_v as_o before_o have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v the_o instance_n we_o bring_v for_o a_o plenary_a and_o particular_a confirmation_n be_v these_o as_o first_o the_o roman_a catholic_n which_o possess_v the_o great_a part_n of_o europe_n second_o the_o lutheran_n profess_v throughout_o saxony_n denmark_n suecia_n and_o some_o other_o state_n in_o germany_n three_o the_o sacramentary_n zwinglians_n and_o rigid_a caluinist_n term_v by_o we_o for_o their_o moteferuent_a suppose_a zeal_n puritan_n and_o these_o be_v disperse_v throughout_o suitzerland_n savoy_n germany_n hungary_n france_n holland_n &_o scotland_n and_o some_o part_n of_o england_n all_o these_o i_o say_v conjoin_v together_o and_o compare_v only_o with_o the_o english_a parliament_n protestant_n do_v make_v often_o part_n of_o christendom_n nine_o at_o the_o least_o which_o proportion_n or_o rather_o disproportion_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v especial_o in_o religion_n when_o i_o serious_o consider_v and_o weigh_v it_o in_o the_o even_a and_o impartial_a balance_n of_o a_o indifferent_a judgement_n i_o can_v in_o all_o duty_n do_v no_o less_o but_o most_o humble_o propose_v unto_o the_o christian_a prudency_n and_o religious_a piety_n of_o your_o majesty_n to_o consider_v of_o what_o importance_n this_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o life_n everlasting_a that_o nine_o part_n of_o ten_o shall_v hold_v the_o english_a protestant_a religion_n for_o damnable_a heresy_n by_o which_o your_o majesty_n expect_v to_o receive_v a_o eternal_a &_o neversade_a crown_n of_o glory_n award_v by_o almighty_a god_n the_o most_o righteous_a judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n 88_o if_o in_o a_o sumptuous_a and_o royal_a banquet_n prepare_v of_o purpose_n to_o entertain_v the_o person_n of_o a_o king_n or_o potent_a monarch_n there_o be_v never_o so_o many_o please_a and_o allure_a dish_n never_o such_o great_a store_n of_o delicate_a viand_n fetch_v from_o the_o sea_n or_o provide_v by_o land_n never_o so_o great_a appetite_n in_o the_o princely_a party_n invite_v if_o often_o learned_a physician_n that_o be_v then_o present_a attend_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o this_o prince_n to_o consult_v and_o provide_v for_o his_o bodily_a health_n and_o welfare_n nine_o of_o they_o shall_v confident_o avouch_v upon_o their_o learning_n and_o judgement_n nay_o life_n itself_o consideration_n that_o all_o those_o daynties_n and_o please_a dish_n be_v infect_v with_o the_o drug_n of_o some_o mortal_a and_o deadly-killing_a poison_n some_o one_o dish_n only_o except_v which_o they_o can_v not_o also_o well_o discover_v i_o think_v it_o will_v make_v the_o party_n invite_v to_o look_v about_o he_o to_o stay_v himself_o and_o examine_v well_o the_o matter_n before_o he_o will_v desperate_o adventure_v to_o please_v his_o palate_n or_o if_o in_o a_o great_a suit_n of_o law_n concern_v the_o interest_n to_o a_o princely_a inheritance_n pretend_v by_o the_o plaintiff_n it_o shall_v be_v either_o by_o parliament_n or_o under_o the_o great_a seal_n or_o by_o some_o other_o statute_n enact_v yea_o and_o without_o fail_v execute_v that_o if_o the_o plaintiff_n fail_v in_o his_o suit_n be_v either_o dryven_v to_o non-suite_n or_o overcome_v in_o his_o suit_n that_o then_o he_o shall_v undergo_v extreme_a misery_n be_v expose_v to_o infinite_a calamity_n most_o certain_o incur_v everlasting_a bondage_n and_o slavery_n though_o some_o one_o lawyer_n of_o ten_o that_o be_v of_o his_o counsel_n shall_v animate_v and_o give_v he_o all_o the_o encouragement_n that_o possible_o he_o
child_n and_o after_o the_o say_a law_n be_v write_v also_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v not_o remit_v promiscuous_o hand_n over_o head_n to_o the_o read_n of_o those_o book_n but_o he_o be_v send_v to_o take_v his_o instruction_n and_o institution_n from_o the_o ordinary_a superior_n doctor_n governor_n of_o that_o church_n and_o these_o be_v to_o expound_v the_o law_n unto_o he_o for_o which_o direction_n and_o tradition_n we_o find_v this_o warrant_n and_o command_v yea_o prescribe_v authority_n ask_v thy_o father_n and_o 7._o they_o will_v tell_v thou_o thy_o elder_n and_o they_o will_v declare_v unto_o thou_o again_o the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n preserve_v knowledge_n and_o yet_o in_o a_o three_o place_n i_o know_v that_o abraham_n will_v demand_v and_o teach_v his_o son_n and_o househould_v 19_o that_o they_o walk_v in_o my_o way_n etc._n etc._n 17._o and_o now_o to_o come_v from_o the_o law_n to_o the_o gospel_n from_o moses_n unto_o christ_n and_o so_o to_o proceed_v orderly_o with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n as_o god_n be_v no_o changeling_n but_o ever_o like_o himself_o even_o so_o the_o beginning_n proceed_v establish_v of_o the_o new_a christian_a faith_n and_o church_n be_v not_o much_o unlike_a if_o not_o altogether_o resemble_v the_o former_a for_o first_o this_o church_n be_v plant_v by_o our_o saviour_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o speedy_o by_o the_o industrious_a ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n assist_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o neither_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o apostle_n the_o principal_a pillar_n of_o the_o church_n have_v as_o at_o this_o time_n any_o write_a instruction_n or_o methodical_a institution_n deliver_v unto_o they_o concern_v their_o teach_n preach_v or_o believe_v except_o only_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n in_o the_o church_n as_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o subsequent_a consideration_n second_o the_o institution_n that_o they_o have_v they_o receive_v it_o by_o instruction_n from_o our_o saviour_n his_o mouth_n and_o from_o the_o immediate_a instinct_n suggestion_n and_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v promise_v by_o christ_n himself_o who_o can_v not_o lie_v nor_o deceive_v to_o assist_v the_o church_n continual_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n and_o by_o this_o institution_n and_o inspiration_n alone_o 20._o they_o teach_v and_o convert_v both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n institute_v church_n establish_v law_n and_o order_n of_o life_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o tradition_n only_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n before_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v commit_v to_o writing_n and_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n for_o some_o year_n and_o that_o in_o the_o infancy_n and_o purity_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o the_o protestant_n must_v perforce_o confess_v three_o when_o the_o wisdom_n of_o heaven_n think_v it_o expedient_a that_o something_o shall_v be_v write_v the_o first_o thing_n commit_v unto_o write_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n and_o this_o be_v collect_v and_o digest_v in_o that_o very_a order_n as_o it_o be_v now_o present_v to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o some_o eight_o year_n after_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n then_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n mark_v some_o five_o year_n after_o that_o &_o then_o that_o of_o s._n luke_n write_v twelve_o year_n after_o the_o former_a wherein_o diverse_a thing_n omit_v in_o the_o other_o gospel_n of_o be_v record_v and_o last_o of_o all_o be_v write_v the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n contain_v in_o it_o many_o great_a and_o important_a matter_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o this_o be_v not_o write_v of_o 66._o year_n after_o the_o first_o visible_a christian_a church_n be_v plant_v and_o establish_v by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 18._o and_o now_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v write_v upon_o particular_a scripture_n occasion_n so_o especial_o be_v this_o famous_a gospel_n of_o s._n john_n which_o be_v the_o very_a key_n open_v the_o door_n unto_o the_o understanding_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o particular_o upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o ebion_n and_o cerinthus_n their_o heresy_n which_o impugn_a the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n whereupon_o i_o do_v infer_v that_o for_o that_o which_o concern_v the_o new_a testament_n the_o church_n be_v for_o diverse_a year_n without_o any_o scripture_n at_o all_o and_o for_o 66._o year_n which_o be_v the_o age_n of_o a_o man_n the_o point_n relate_v by_o s._n john_n more_o than_o be_v utter_v in_o the_o other_o ghospell_n which_o be_v many_o and_o most_o important_a be_v receive_v and_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n only_o and_o now_o for_o conclusion_n of_o all_o i_o will_v demand_v but_o one_o thing_n of_o the_o protestant_n that_o make_v such_o show_n of_o appeal_n unto_o scripture_n and_o the_o primitive_a apostolical_a church_n &_o this_o be_v demand_v above_o 1400._o year_n ago_o by_o s._n irenaus_n before_o cite_v who_o live_v in_o the_o very_a next_o 4._o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n upon_o the_o very_a like_o occasion_n sineque_fw-la apostoli_fw-la scripturas_fw-la reliquissent_fw-la nobis_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o yet_o ought_v not_o we_o to_o follow_v that_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o leave_v to_o those_o to_o who_o they_o commit_v their_o church_n so_o that_o holy_a bishop_n and_o martyr_n especial_o ought_v we_o not_o to_o follow_v that_o order_n of_o tradition_n since_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o save_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n continue_v for_o 2000_o year_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o for_o many_o other_o year_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o in_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n only_o without_o the_o help_n of_o any_o word_n write_v 19_o whereby_o we_o can_v but_o discern_v and_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o scripture_n or_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o so_o absolute_a necessary_a for_o the_o reveal_n of_o god_n his_o will_n unto_o man_n kind_n and_o the_o continue_n of_o man_n in_o that_o save_a knowledge_n of_o he_o but_o that_o his_o divine_a majesty_n may_v have_v propagate_v and_o preserve_v his_o doctrine_n and_o man_n in_o the_o truth_n by_o tradition_n only_o of_o word_n of_o mouth_n without_o any_o scripture_n at_o all_o if_o it_o have_v so_o please_v he_o as_o he_o do_v for_o many_o age_n and_o generation_n together_o both_o before_o the_o first_o great_a deluge_n by_o water_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o first_o patriarch_n until_o abraban_n his_o time_n who_o he_o choose_v for_o the_o head_n of_o his_o people_n as_o also_o afterwards_o when_o he_o direct_v the_o same_o people_n by_o like_a tradition_n as_o well_o in_o egypt_n where_o they_o remain_v in_o most_o cruel_a bondage_n for_o 400._o year_n as_o else_o where_o before_o moses_n write_v his_o forename_a book_n and_o the_o like_a he_o may_v have_v do_v with_o christian_n to_o the_o world_n great_a general_a consummation_n &_o last_o inundation_n by_o a_o flood_n of_o fire_n according_a to_o s._n irenaeus_n his_o sentence_n if_o he_o have_v list_v as_o have_v institute_v a_o more_o orderly_o exact_a and_o authorize_v church_n yea_o and_o have_v endue_v it_o with_o great_a privilege_n according_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o new_a law_n above_o the_o old_a than_o he_o have_v do_v unto_o the_o former_a of_o the_o jew_n whereupon_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v by_o force_n of_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o the_o tradition_n of_o this_o church_n and_o pure_a authority_n thereof_o both_o in_o propound_v scripture_n unto_o we_o and_o discern_v the_o same_o which_o be_v true_o scripture_n and_o which_o be_v not_o as_o also_o for_o deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o mean_v thereof_o in_o their_o interpretation_n and_o exposition_n be_v much_o more_o to_o be_v respect_v by_o we_o than_o be_v that_o of_o the_o jew_n forasmuch_o as_o christ_n our_o saviour_n promise_v the_o continual_a assistance_n of_o his_o spirit_n unto_o this_o church_n and_o that_o in_o such_o measure_n as_o that_o it_o shall_v alone_o be_v able_a to_o withstand_v all_o the_o infernal_a power_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n idest_fw-la the_o very_a entrance_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o error_n or_o here_o into_o it_o whatsoever_o 20._o these_o then_o that_o never_o so_o solemn_o and_o never_o so_o scripture_n confident_o profess_v that_o they_o for_o their_o part_n do_v believe_v and_o follow_v the_o scripture_n without_o due_a reference_n or_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n forsomuch_o as_o all_o sectary_n and_o heretikc_n that_o
augustine_n sancti_fw-la apostoli_fw-la certam_fw-la regulam_fw-la fidei_fw-la tradiderunt_fw-la quam_fw-la secundum_fw-la numerum_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la temp_n etc._n etc._n the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v deliver_v a_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n which_o rule_n be_v comprehend_v in_o twelve_o sentence_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o 12._o apostle_n be_v call_v by_o they_o by_o a_o greek_a word_n and_o borrow_a metaphor_n symbolum_n a_o symbol_n or_o collation_n of_o many_o thing_n together_o and_o their_o intention_n as_o be_v before_o intimate_v be_v that_o by_o this_o symbol_n sign_n and_o sum_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la veritas_fw-la ab_fw-la haereticae_fw-la pravitatis_fw-la falsitate_fw-la discernatur_fw-la as_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n speak_v of_o his_o golden_a rule_n of_o faith_n deliver_v unto_o he_o from_o all_o his_o ancestor_n that_o haereses_fw-la the_o truth_n of_o catholic_a faith_n and_o verity_n may_v be_v discern_v from_o the_o falsehood_n of_o heretical_a pravity_n this_o have_v our_o ancestor_n leave_v we_o by_o tradition_n and_o for_o the_o first_o in_o stitution_n of_o it_o it_o be_v in_o this_o sort_n as_o the_o history_n of_o antiquity_n the_o very_a life_n of_o memory_n have_v by_o write_v register_v and_o commend_v it_o unto_o us._n 5._o after_o the_o glorious_a visible_a ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n from_o the_o low_a pitch_n and_o vale_n of_o the_o earth_n misery_n into_o the_o high_a top_n of_o heaven_n and_o bosom_n of_o his_o father_n eternity_n this_o being_n terminus_fw-la ad_fw-la quem_fw-la aswell_o as_o it_o be_v terminus_fw-la à_fw-la quo_fw-la in_o that_o great_a motion_n of_o heaven_n christ_n incarnation_n and_o man_n redemption_n the_o place_n whither_o he_o ascend_v as_o it_o be_v the_o place_n whence_o he_o descend_v according_a to_o that_o exivi_fw-la à_fw-la patre_fw-la veni_fw-la in_o mundum_fw-la relinquo_fw-la mundum_fw-la vado_fw-la ad_fw-la patrem_fw-la i_o say_v after_o this_o ascension_n &_o descension_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o visible_a shape_n of_o fiery_a tongue_n upon_o the_o apostle_n in_o able_v they_o and_o qualify_a they_o with_o the_o tongue_n of_o nation_n for_o the_o convert_n of_o nation_n than_o the_o apostle_n be_v ready_a to_o separate_v themselves_o and_o to_o depart_v into_o all_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n they_o do_v compose_v and_o lay_v down_o a_o perfect_a platform_n of_o their_o future_a preach_n and_o other_o believe_v by_o devise_v a_o certain_a square_a rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o so_o much_o for_o their_o own_o direction_n be_v so_o assist_v with_o the_o inward_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o they_o can_v not_o possible_o err_v in_o their_o doctrine_n though_o their_o teach_n be_v ever_o to_o be_v conform_v unto_o these_o head_n as_o for_o the_o christian_a church_n instruction_n and_o premonition_n that_o by_o have_v recourse_n unto_o these_o general_a head_n of_o faith_n commend_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o true_a apostle_n they_o may_v more_o easy_o discern_v and_o avoid_v the_o heretical_a doctrine_n of_o all_o false_a disciple_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n be_v assemble_v together_o and_o meet_v as_o it_o be_v the_o second_o time_n in_o council_n be_v each_o of_o they_o several_o replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o all_o of_o they_o joint_o direct_v by_o the_o self_n same_o never-erring_a spirit_n who_o be_v both_o now_o and_o ever_o in_o such_o assembly_n as_o these_o to_o sit_v as_o precedent_n in_o the_o church_n i_o say_v be_v thus_o prepare_v every_o one_o propose_v as_o he_o believe_v and_o all_o be_v put_v together_o in_o the_o upshot_n do_v make_v the_o shot_n or_o symbol_n of_o a_o brief_a yet_o entire_a methodical_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n include_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n either_o to_o be_v preach_v afterwards_o by_o the_o apostle_n or_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o their_o disciple_n and_o this_o sum_n do_v the_o apostle_n themselves_o appoint_v to_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n or_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n unto_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v ad_fw-la directionem_fw-la ad_fw-la distinctionem_fw-la both_o for_o a_o direction_n unto_o that_o which_o they_o be_v to_o preach_v and_o other_o be_v to_o believe_v as_o also_o to_o discern_v and_o put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o all_o faithful_a christian_n and_o misbelieve_a infidel_n 6._o thus_o s._n augustine_n who_o sense_n i_o have_v keep_v though_o i_o have_v somewhat_o dilate_v upon_o his_o word_n relate_v the_o matter_n which_o before_o he_o have_v be_v record_v by_o ruffinus_n temp_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o this_o creed_n so_o that_o s._n augustine_n borrow_v not_o only_a sense_n but_o the_o self_n same_o word_n also_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v take_v from_o ruffinus_n and_o further_o the_o say_a ruffinus_n do_v add_v another_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n symbol_n beside_o a_o collation_n or_o contribution_n of_o many_o thing_n unto_o creed_n one_o say_v that_o it_o signify_v also_o a_o sign_n or_o badge_n whereby_o one_o sort_n of_o soldier_n be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o and_o in_o this_o acception_n also_o of_o the_o word_n it_o consort_v well_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n that_o by_o this_o brief_a sum_n of_o doctrine_n as_o by_o a_o badge_n or_o cognisance_n true_a catholic_a christian_n man_n may_v be_v distinguish_v here_o from_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n since_o after_o death_n there_o be_v such_o a_o external_a distinction_n and_o separation_n to_o be_v make_v and_o for_o this_o purpose_n at_o the_o beginning_n this_o creed_n serve_v but_o afterward_o charity_n &_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o christian_a piety_n decay_v and_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n exceed_o multiply_v upon_o the_o earth_n this_o brief_a and_o plain_a sum_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n against_o infernal_a and_o heretical_a subtlety_n for_o that_o as_o s._n augustine_n before_o have_v well_o observe_v sundry_a sort_n of_o heretic_n presume_v to_o shrewd_a their_o heresy_n under_o the_o article_n of_o this_o creed_n pervert_v also_o the_o meaning_n and_o misunderstand_v aswell_o the_o word_n thereof_o as_o the_o sense_n so_o as_o in_o fine_a the_o bare_a and_o outward_a profession_n of_o believe_v this_o creed_n become_v at_o last_o to_o be_v no_o certain_a argument_n of_o prove_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o true_a christian_a catholic_a except_o other_o due_a convince_a circumstance_n concur_v as_o we_o have_v before_o show_v of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n themselves_o 7._o furthermore_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v joint_o affirm_v and_o express_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v that_o albeit_o the_o word_n be_v few_o and_o brief_a of_o this_o creed_n yet_o be_v they_o so_o substantial_a punctual_a and_o material_a as_o that_o they_o contain_v the_o full_a and_o entire_a sum_n of_o whatsoever_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o his_o word_n be_v these_o creed_n quicquid_fw-la praefiguratum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o patriarchis_fw-la quicquid_fw-la denunciatum_fw-la in_o scripture_n quicquid_fw-la praedictum_fw-la in_o prophetis_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la ingeni●o_fw-la vel_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la nato_fw-la etc._n etc._n whatsoever_o be_v prefigure_v in_o the_o patriarch_n whatsoever_o be_v denounce_v in_o the_o scripture_n whatsoever_o be_v foretell_v in_o the_o prophet_n either_o of_o god_n the_o father_n unbegotten_a or_o of_o god_n the_o son_n beget_v or_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o of_o receyve_v any_o sacrament_n or_o of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o resurrection_n all_o this_o be_v brief_o contain_v in_o this_o creed_n so_o that_o the_o observation_n hence_o deduce_v must_v needs_o be_v this_o that_o albeit_o in_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o the_o creed_n many_o thing_n belong_v to_o faith_n be_v not_o literal_a and_o syllabical_o express_v yet_o be_v they_o imply_v comprehend_v and_o intend_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o namely_o and_o particular_o about_o the_o admit_v of_o sacrament_n of_o their_o nature_n number_n necessity_n efficacy_n manner_n of_o administration_n and_o the_o like_a as_o s._n augustine_n do_v here_o expound_v which_o yet_o in_o the_o word_n be_v not_o express_v but_o be_v lock_v up_o with_o in_o the_o sacred_a breast_n and_o closet_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o safe_a treasury_n there_o to_o be_v expound_v dilate_a amplify_v more_o large_o and_o particular_o unto_o the_o faithful_a as_o either_o the_o church_n necessity_n require_v or_o heretical_a pertinacy_n and_o importunity_n oppugn_v shall_v at_o any_o time_n or_o occasion_n require_v which_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o sound_a commentary_n upon_o the_o creed_n he_o that_o in_o all_o humility_n of_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n submit_v not_o himself_o to_o believe_v &_o obey_v can_v be_v true_o say_v to_o believe_v this_o creed_n notwithstanding_o
he_o shall_v protest_v &_o confess_v open_o ten_o thousand_o time_n that_o he_o admit_v all_o the_o word_n and_o every_o syllable_n thereof_o 8._o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v consider_v that_o it_o be_v most_o worthy_a of_o a_o christian_a man_n his_o observation_n especial_o if_o he_o have_v either_o care_n or_o make_v any_o conscience_n to_o preserve_v himself_o believe_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o thereby_o to_o save_v his_o soul_n that_o albeit_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v with_o uniform_a verdict_n affirm_v that_o these_o article_n of_o the_o apostolical_a creed_n be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n replenish_v and_o direct_v with_o no_o small_a measure_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o now_o have_v be_v observe_v i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o discuss_v at_o this_o present_a whether_o every_o several_a article_n of_o the_o twelve_o which_o it_o contain_v be_v set_v dowue_a by_o several_a apostle_n though_o diverse_a grave_n and_o ancient_a father_n do_v affirm_v it_o yet_o be_v these_o article_n never_o hold_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n no_o nor_o yet_o be_v they_o at_o this_o day_n either_o by_o catholic_a or_o protestant_n and_o if_o any_o man_n reply_n that_o they_o be_v consonant_n unto_o scripture_n and_o may_v be_v thence_o deduce_v i_o deny_v not_o that_o only_o i_o say_v this_o be_v nothing_o to_o argue_v that_o authority_n that_o they_o have_v obtain_v in_o the_o church_n since_o that_o all_o other_o write_n of_o orthodox_a man_n be_v both_o consonant_n unto_o scripture_n and_o to_o be_v deduce_v from_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o hold_v in_o that_o esteem_n as_o the_o creed_n but_o my_o consequence_n that_o hereupon_o i_o infer_v be_v this_o that_o something_o must_v be_v grant_v of_o necessity_n beside_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o have_v be_v necessary_o believe_v in_o the_o christian_a catholic_a church_n and_o that_o by_o tradition_n only_o without_o any_o other_o foundaation_n and_o that_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o christian_a religion_n 9_o this_o appear_v by_o the_o former_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n that_o this_o creed_n come_v down_o along_o through_o the_o century_n of_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n and_o ruffinus_n say_v in_o his_o exposition_n of_o this_o creed_n idcirco_fw-la haec_fw-la nonscripta_fw-la font_n chartulis_fw-la atque_fw-la membranis_fw-la symbolum_n etc._n etc._n &_o therefore_o do_v the_o apostle_n deliver_v these_o thing_n not_o write_v in_o paper_n and_o parchment_n but_o to_o be_v retain_v in_o man_n heart_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v certain_a that_o no_o man_n shall_v by_o read_v have_v the_o same_o for_o that_o write_n be_v accustom_v to_o come_v also_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o infidel_n aswell_o as_o christian_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v learn_v the_o same_o from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o ruffinus_n give_v of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o creed_n 10._o the_o very_a same_o have_v s._n hierome_n his_o word_n be_v clear_a in_o symbolo_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o spei_fw-la nostrae_fw-la say_v he_o non_fw-la scribitur_fw-la in_o chartis_fw-la &_o atramento_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o tabulis_fw-la cordis_fw-la carnalibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o the_o creed_n that_o contain_v our_o faith_n and_o hope_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o write_v church_n in_o paper_n and_o ink_n but_o in_o the_o fleshly_a table_n of_o our_o heart_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o this_o do_v evident_o convince_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o understand_a man_n that_o these_o article_n of_o the_o apostolic_a creed_n be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n unto_o christian_n and_o the_o church_n be_v put_v in_o trust_n with_o they_o to_o teach_v they_o unto_o her_o child_n before_o that_o any_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v commit_v to_o writing_n and_o that_o many_o thing_n of_o great_a moment_n about_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o expound_v therein_o and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n learning_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n especial_o concern_v sacrament_n which_o be_v not_o express_v and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o s._n augustine_n and_o other_o father_n before_o he_o do_v often_o reiterate_v and_o frequent_o use_v that_o impsove_a kind_n of_o speech_n norum_n fideles_fw-la the_o faithful_a do_v know_v what_o belong_v unto_o these_o matter_n which_o purposely_o they_o do_v not_o reveal_v unto_o the_o ear_n of_o new_a christian_n least_o infidel_n may_v take_v any_o advantage_n thereby_o to_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o the_o church_n so_o as_o my_o conclusion_n of_o this_o must_v of_o necessity_n hold_v correspondence_n with_o that_o former_a conclusion_n touch_v the_o argument_n of_o scripture_n to_o wit_n whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o never_o so_o open_o &_o plain_o profess_v that_o he_o do_v accept_v admit_v and_o believe_v this_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o refuse_v the_o understanding_n thereof_o expound_v by_o the_o church_n and_o deliver_v in_o her_o sense_n he_o believe_v it_o not_o at_o all_o to_o salvation_n neither_o shall_v it_o avail_v he_o any_o more_o to_o admit_v the_o word_n and_o not_o receive_v the_o sense_n then_o if_o at_o once_o and_o altogether_o he_o reject_v both_o word_n and_o sense_n 11._o and_o here_o may_v some_o demand_n but_o where_o now_o shall_v we_o be_v sure_a to_o find_v this_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n esspecial_o find_v in_o these_o distract_a time_n of_o schism_n when_o so_o many_o several_a sect_n plead_v for_o the_o church_n cry_v out_o according_a to_o christ_n his_o prophetical_a prediction_n here_o be_v christ_n and_o there_o be_v christ_n here_o be_v the_o church_n &_o there_o be_v the_o pure_a chospell_n here_o be_v the_o word_n true_o preach_v &_o there_o be_v the_o sacrament_n sincere_o administer_v &_o c_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v we_o shall_v easy_o come_v by_o this_o orthodox_a exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n if_o we_o have_v recourse_n unto_o the_o public_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v from_o age_n to_o age_n even_o until_o our_o time_n throughout_o every_o century_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a unless_o it_o be_v unto_o such_o as_o be_v blind_a as_o s._n augustine_n have_v already_o observe_v 12._o s._n ambrose_n in_o his_o time_n remit_v we_o unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o supreme_a pastor_n whereof_o be_v than_o siricius_n for_o our_o direction_n herein_o credatur_fw-la symbolum_n apostolorum_fw-la say_v he_o quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la rome_n ana_fw-la intemeratum_fw-la semper_fw-la custodit_fw-la &_o seruat_fw-la let_v faith_n be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v ever_o keep_v and_o preserve_v inviolated_a &_o yet_o be_v this_o upon_o the_o very_a point_n of_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n his_o ascension_n so_o as_o in_o that_o time_n and_o in_o this_o great_a saint_n and_o doctor_n judgement_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v then_o the_o best_a and_o sure_a direction_n to_o know_v the_o true_a content_n and_o meaning_n of_o this_o apostolic_a creed_n and_o consequent_o if_o our_o english_a ministry_n who_o at_o their_o ordination_n do_v subscribe_v unto_o this_o creed_n will_v follow_v also_o the_o same_o direction_n for_o the_o true_a understanding_n and_o sense_n thereof_o all_o matter_n will_v quick_o be_v reconcile_v &_o controversy_n accord_v but_o in_o default_n of_o this_o and_o for_o that_o pride_n and_o self_n will_v have_v so_o be_v witch_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o that_o they_o can_v in_o humility_n stoop_v down_o their_o private_a censure_n unto_o the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o great_a discord_n and_o difference_n that_o now_o be_v reign_v betwixt_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n and_o among_o protestant_n themselves_o concern_v the_o exposition_n thereof_o and_o this_o shall_v appear_v in_o part_n in_o the_o next_o ensue_a consideration_n of_o this_o chapter_n but_o yet_o before_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o other_o consideration_n we_o shall_v speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o of_o the_o other_o creed_n mention_v here_o by_o his_o majesty_n 13._o the_o other_o creed_n then_o be_v the_o nieene_n conclude_v gratian._n as_o s._n ambrose_n note_v with_o the_o suffrage_n of_o 318._o renown_a father_n allude_v to_o the_o just_a number_n of_o abraham_n soldier_n when_o he_o rescue_v lot_n and_o of_o s._n athanasius_n and_o these_o be_v write_v upon_o occasion_n of_o heresy_n afterward_o arise_v and_o impugn_v some_o fundamental_a point_n &_o consequent_o athanasius_n be_v but_o explication_n of_o the_o former_a as_o his_o majesty_n do_v learned_o and_o excellent_o observe_v and_o therefore_o these_o do_v principal_o depend_v thereon_o this_o be_v evident_a if_o we_o reflect_v a_o little_a upon_o the_o principal_a subject_n of_o the_o 2._o
point_n thereof_o not_o only_o of_o those_o article_n which_o he_o there_o set_v down_o principal_o against_o the_o arian_n and_o other_o heresy_n as_o do_v also_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a for_o that_o otherways_o some_o man_n may_v object_v and_o say_v that_o the_o nine_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n the_o commumon_a of_o saint_n which_o s._n athanasius_n mention_v not_o be_v no_o article_n of_o belief_n and_o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o the_o faith_n thereof_o especial_o for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o say_a article_n with_o the_o other_o three_o next_o ensue_v to_o wit_n i_o believe_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o life_n everlasting_a together_o with_o the_o five_o article_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n all_o which_o be_v permit_v by_o the_o nicen_n creed_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n faith_n which_o be_v a_o heathenish_a absurdity_n to_o imagine_v 18._o s._n athanasius_n then_o as_o also_o that_o ancient_a orthodox_a council_n of_o nice_a albeit_o they_o set_v down_o and_o expound_v those_o article_n in_o their_o creed_n which_o the_o church_n necessity_n instant_o require_v to_o be_v explayn_v in_o those_o time_n against_o the_o heresy_n which_o then_o most_o infest_a and_o trouble_v the_o church_n yet_o be_v they_o joint_o ever_o of_o this_o opinion_n and_o belief_n that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o believe_v all_o and_o every_o point_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n and_o that_o firmiter_fw-la fideliterque_fw-la that_o be_v both_o firm_o and_o faithful_o as_o s._n athanasius_n his_o word_n be_v shall_v most_o certain_o be_v damn_v everlasting_o and_o conform_v unto_o this_o i_o have_v show_v before_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n the_o uniform_a consent_a severity_n of_o all_o antiquity_n that_o any_o the_o least_o heresy_n or_o error_n defend_v obstinate_o and_o with_o pertinacity_n against_o the_o church_n be_v it_o but_o one_o sentence_n word_n fillable_n nay_o letter_n be_v sufficient_a to_o cast_v a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n into_o heretical_a pravity_n and_o diabolical_a novelty_n and_o consequent_o to_o bring_v a_o man_n unto_o everlasting_a perdition_n and_o destruction_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o this_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v by_o the_o unanime_fw-la verdict_n of_o s._n athanasius_n s._n basill_n s._n nazianzen_n s._n hierome_n s._n augustine_n and_o other_o which_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o very_a close_a period_n of_o his_o book_n of_o heresy_n direct_v to_o quodvult_a deus_n pronounce_v bold_o and_o denounce_v confident_o against_o all_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n that_o whosoever_o do_v hold_v any_o one_o of_o these_o heresy_n register_v in_o that_o book_n of_o he_o or_o any_o other_o that_o shall_v spring_v up_o afterwards_o he_o can_v be_v a_o catholic_a christian_a and_o consequent_o can_v be_v save_v for_o that_o he_o hould_v not_o the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n entire_o and_o inviolable_o 19_o and_o now_o to_o descend_v from_o the_o general_a to_o the_o heresy_n special_a and_o to_o make_v just_a proof_n of_o all_o the_o former_a accusation_n and_o imputation_n lay_v upon_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n first_o the_o minister_n of_o that_o church_n do_v stiff_o hold_v sundry_a of_o those_o heresy_n which_o s._n augustine_n have_v record_v for_o heresy_n and_o as_o condemn_v of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n in_o that_o book_n of_o his_o before_o cite_v 20._o and_o for_o example_n it_o can_v be_v gainsay_v but_o they_o deny_v all_o external_a sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a with_o the_o heretic_n aerius_n this_o be_v one_o heresy_n and_o a_o capital_a one_o too_o if_o we_o do_v believe_v s._n augustine_n second_o the_o protestant_n fall_v into_o another_o heresy_n of_o aerius_n for_o they_o deny_v statue_n solenniter_fw-la celebranda_fw-la esse_fw-la ieiunia_fw-la sed_fw-la cum_fw-la cuique_fw-la voluerit_fw-la ieiunandum_fw-la ne_fw-la videatur_fw-la esse_fw-la sub_fw-la lege_fw-la that_o solemn_a fast_n appoint_v by_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v observe_v but_o that_o every_o man_n shall_v fast_v when_o he_o will_v lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v under_o the_o law_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n out_o of_o epiphanius_n and_o be_v not_o this_o the_o very_a speech_n of_o our_o minister_n &_o preacher_n of_o england_n at_o this_o day_n nay_o i_o have_v hear_v some_o of_o they_o myself_o proceed_v so_o earnest_o in_o their_o rail_a humour_n against_o this_o sacred_a and_o angelical_a abstinence_n that_o they_o have_v not_o stick_v to_o condemn_v the_o holy_a time_n of_o lent_n as_o popish_a and_o superstitious_a tend_v quite_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o man_n health_n and_o bodily_a constitution_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o author_n thereof_o say_v they_o want_v wisdom_n and_o discretion_n for_o institute_v it_o in_o such_o a_o time_n of_o the_o year_n as_o the_o spring_n be_v when_o man_n his_o body_n require_v the_o best_a and_o pure_a nutriment_n 20._o three_o there_o be_v also_o record_v by_o s._n augustine_n haeres_fw-la 69._o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n that_o affirm_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v whole_o corrupt_v and_o perish_v except_o only_o among_o their_o follower_n and_o do_v not_o the_o protestant_n to_o avoid_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n utter_v the_o same_o contumelious_a slander_n at_o this_o day_n condemn_v all_o other_o to_o justify_v themselves_o 21._o again_o do_v not_o the_o protestant_n fall_v into_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o jovinianist_n as_o it_o be_v register_v by_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n haeres_fw-la 88_o that_o hold_v the_o equality_n of_o sin_n and_o do_v equal_a marriage_n with_o virginity_n and_o thereupon_o be_v the_o cause_n protestant_n say_v s._n augustine_n that_o diverse_a sacred_a virgin_n consecrate_v to_o god_n by_o the_o holy_a and_o lawful_a vow_n of_o sacred_a single_a life_n leave_v their_o profession_n and_o marry_v and_o be_v not_o this_o also_o practise_v and_o defend_v by_o protestant_n at_o this_o day_n do_v they_o not_o deny_v all_o evangelicall_a counsel_n of_o perfection_n delude_v scripture_n and_o reject_v father_n though_o never_o so_o many_o never_o so_o pregnant_a for_o prove_v and_o convince_a of_o this_o witness_v a_o treatise_n late_o publish_v by_o a_o former_a liech_n minister_n of_o your_o church_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o evangelicall_a counsel_n not_o long_o since_o preach_v by_o he_o in_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n 22._o i_o pretermit_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o manichee_n that_o deny_v freewill_n and_o of_o the_o novatian_n who_o will_v not_o grant_v that_o priest_n have_v authority_n in_o the_o church_n to_o remit_v sin_n all_o which_o ancient_a heresy_n with_o many_o more_o which_o i_o purposely_o omit_v be_v hold_v in_o like_a manner_n in_o some_o degree_n or_o other_o yea_o defend_v with_o great_a resolution_n by_o our_o english_a minister_n they_o can_v be_v account_v to_o believe_v entire_o and_o inviolable_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o creed_n which_o condemn_v all_o these_o for_o heresy_n 23._o and_o furthermore_o if_o beside_o this_o we_o will_v but_o consider_v the_o variety_n and_o multiplicity_n of_o other_o new_a sect_n of_o these_o our_o day_n with_o which_o our_o english_a minister_n do_v participate_v and_o make_v open_a profession_n to_o communicate_v as_o with_o their_o brethren_n we_o shall_v discern_v clear_o that_o they_o can_v so_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o hold_v the_o sincere_a integrity_n of_o one_o only_a faith_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o they_o have_v ever_o hitherto_o admit_v for_o brethren_n and_o man_n of_o one_o faith_n the_o lutheran_n for_o example_n who_o express_o condemn_v they_o for_o heretic_n and_o profess_v in_o the_o open_a ear_n of_o the_o world_n themselves_o to_o dissent_v real_o from_o they_o in_o diverse_a weighty_a and_o capital_a point_n as_o touch_v the_o real_a presence_n the_o person_n of_o christ_n justification_n freewill_n the_o law_n the_o gospel_n and_o many_o other_o more_o of_o like_a nature_n as_o by_o their_o own_o book_n and_o write_n do_v appear_v and_o how_o then_o may_v they_o be_v say_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o s._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n which_o pronounce_v damnation_n against_o all_o such_o as_o do_v not_o faithful_o and_o firm_o hold_v the_o whole_a entire_a catholic_a faith_n without_o any_o violation_n in_o any_o one_o article_n at_o all_o and_o so_o let_v we_o pass_v unto_o the_o two_o other_o creed_n to_o wit_n unto_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nyce_n and_o the_o apostlicall_a 24._o in_o the_o nicene_n creed_n for_o the_o better_a and_o further_a explication_n of_o christ_n his_o godhead_n and_o equality_n with_o his_o father_n against_o the_o arian_n heresy_n there_o
and_o the_o place_n be_v very_o pregnant_a for_o prove_v the_o point_n the_o bench_n be_v set_v the_o minister_n each_o in_o time_n and_o order_n speak_v but_o god_n know_v how_o few_o wise_a and_o true_a word_n be_v speak_v among_o they_o the_o first_o start_v up_o and_o expound_v it_o of_o christ_n his_o suffering_n upon_o the_o cross_n a_o second_o understand_v it_o of_o the_o grave_n a_o three_o extend_v it_o to_o christ_n his_o suffering_n of_o hell_n torment_v in_o soul_n and_o the_o four_o yet_o add_v and_o interpret_v it_o of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a the_o moderator_n for_o such_o a_o one_o they_o have_v in_o all_o their_o exercise_n he_o as_o wise_a as_o the_o rest_n instead_o of_o mend_v all_o he_o mar_v all_o for_o he_o commend_v all_o approve_v all_o and_o receive_v all_o and_o then_o fall_v out_o into_o a_o wonderful_a admiration_n of_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o every_o one_o of_o his_o fellow_n labourer_n in_o the_o gospel_n shall_v have_v his_o several_a exposition_n and_o yet_o all_o to_o agree_v and_o all_o to_o be_v intend_v by_o the_o holy_a church_n but_o this_o be_v just_a according_a to_o tertullian_n his_o prescription_n nihil_fw-la interest_n haereticis_fw-la licèt_fw-la diversa_fw-la tractantibus_fw-la dum_fw-la prescript_n ad_fw-la unius_fw-la veritatis_fw-la expugnationem_fw-la conspirent_fw-la it_o import_v not_o among_o heretic_n though_o so_o many_o man_n be_v of_o so_o many_o mind_n whilst_o they_o can_v conspire_v to_o impugn_v one_o truth_n and_o do_v not_o so_o many_o several_a and_o erroneous_a exposition_n band_v against_o one_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o article_n forcible_o make_v good_a this_o prescription_n and_o note_n of_o tertullian_n 37._o and_o for_o my_o part_n as_o then_o so_o now_o i_o be_o of_o absolute_a opinion_n that_o if_o all_o my_o brethren_n and_o their_o moderator_n with_o they_o have_v be_v as_o far_o out_o of_o the_o town_n as_o they_o be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o text_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o that_o place_n they_o will_v never_o more_o have_v return_v either_o to_o wife_n or_o cure_n or_o make_v such_o a_o other_o fanatical_a exposition_n tend_v only_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o article_n 38._o but_o yet_o my_o second_o observation_n go_v far_o beyond_o all_o this_o and_o for_o the_o novelty_n and_o absurdity_n of_o the_o exposition_n it_o deserve_v to_o be_v register_v in_o the_o record_n of_o eternal_a memory_n that_o all_o the_o world_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o palpable_a blindness_n of_o heresy_n and_o it_o be_v of_o diverse_a stipendiary_a preacher_n who_o as_o they_o several_o succeed_v one_o the_o other_o in_o a_o very_a eminent_a place_n of_o that_o kingdom_n so_o they_o diverse_o expound_v the_o article_n one_o of_o they_o expound_v it_o of_o hell_n torment_v in_o calvin_n sense_n a_o second_o succeed_v of_o the_o grave_n in_o beza_n his_o meaning_n the_o three_o and_o last_o because_o he_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o prove_v himself_o a_o heretic_n addidit_fw-la de_fw-la svo_fw-la he_o find_v out_o such_o a_o exposition_n as_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o unless_o it_o be_v by_o one_o jacob_n a_o turbulent_a and_o schismatical_a spirit_n that_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n impar_fw-la congressus_fw-la i_o say_v no_o more_o touch_v this_o article_n his_o exposition_n in_o plain_a word_n be_v this_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n that_o be_v say_v he_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n inferos_fw-la and_o this_o he_o think_v he_o prove_v substantial_o out_o of_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o say_v he_o signify_v no_o more_o they_o that_o christ_n go_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v say_v he_o to_o a_o invisible_a place_n and_o this_o must_v be_v proportion_v according_a to_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o person_n and_o consequent_o must_v be_v heaven_n for_o what_o place_n can_v be_v fit_a for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v thus_o in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o heaven_n and_o so_o as_o before_o his_o conclusion_n for_o a_o full_a and_o perfect_a exposition_n of_o this_o article_n be_v he_o descend_v into_o hell_n that_o be_v he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o be_v not_o this_o as_o luther_n merry_o gibe_v at_o the_o canonical_a exposition_n of_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la as_o if_o a_o man_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o interpret_v this_o text_n god_n create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v interpret_v it_o thus_o acroked_a staff_n be_v make_v a_o kite_n or_o the_o cuckoo_n do_v eat_v up_o the_o kitling_n bone_n and_o all_o for_o certain_a i_o be_o there_o be_v as_o much_o truth_n and_o correspondency_n betwixt_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o oh_o miserable_a preacher_n o_o thrice_o miserable_a people_n that_o thus_o suffer_v their_o eye_n to_o be_v put_v out_o and_o their_o soul_n to_o be_v delude_v beguile_v and_o betray_v by_o such_o heretical_a impostor_n 39_o and_o now_o to_o proceed_v forward_o and_o to_o see_v what_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v hold_v in_o this_o point_n m._n thomas_n roger_n minister_n of_o horninger_n and_o chaplain_n to_o the_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o set_v forth_o in_o print_n of_o late_a the_o faith_n doctrine_n and_o religion_n process_v and_o protect_v in_o england_n for_o so_o be_v his_o word_n in_o 36._o article_n agree_v upon_o as_o he_o say_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n of_o england_n when_o he_o come_v unto_o this_o article_n he_o seem_v not_o to_o know_v what_o to_o say_v for_o have_v lay_v forth_o this_o article_n of_o christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n he_o have_v these_o word_n that_o christ_n go_v down_o into_o hell_n say_v etc._n he_o all_o sound_a christian_n both_o in_o former_a time_n and_o now_o live_v do_v acknowledge_v howbeit_o in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o article_n there_o be_v not_o that_o consent_n that_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v and_o so_o after_o he_o have_v set_v down_o diverse_a opinion_n of_o other_o forget_v to_o put_v down_o his_o own_o he_o pass_v and_o post_v the_o matter_n over_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v what_o they_o of_o england_n do_v hold_v or_o what_o it_o be_v that_o be_v agree_v upon_o by_o the_o bishop_n or_o whether_o they_o hold_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o though_o in_o the_o title_n of_o all_o his_o book_n he_o do_v promise_n to_o set_v down_o 39_o article_n uniform_o agree_v upon_o by_o the_o say_a bishop_n and_o clergy_n belike_o he_o find_v no_o concord_n or_o agreement_n in_o this_o behalf_n only_o he_o recount_v the_o adverse_a opinion_n which_o he_o hold_v for_o opposite_a error_n and_o adversary_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o then_o go_v on_o further_o he_o say_v but_o until_o we_o know_v the_o native_a and_o undoubted_a sense_n of_o this_o article_n and_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n we_o persist_v adversary_n unto_o they_o that_o say_v that_o christ_n descend_v not_o into_o hell_n at_o all_o or_o that_o christ_n descend_v into_o the_o place_n of_o everlasting_a torment_n or_o endure_v in_o soul_n the_o pain_n of_o damn_a spirit_n etc._n etc._n which_o opinion_n you_o have_v hear_v now_o to_o have_v be_v partly_o of_o calvin_n partly_o of_o other_o protestant_n so_o as_o with_o they_o the_o church_n of_o england_n hold_v not_o nor_o yet_o with_o the_o papist_n say_v he_o for_o that_o present_o he_o add_v for_o a_o opposite_a error_n unto_o they_o that_o christ_n in_o soul_n go_v down_o into_o limbo_n lake_n to_o fetch_v from_o thence_o opinion_n the_o soul_n of_o our_o forefather_n which_o soul_n say_v he_o before_o christ_n death_n as_o papist_n dream_n be_v shut_v up_o in_o the_o close_a prison_n of_o hell_n now_o then_o to_o reflect_v upon_o the_o premise_n and_o out_o of_o they_o to_o infer_v the_o conclusion_n the_o illation_n must_v needs_o be_v this_o though_o all_o part_n do_v in_o word_n admit_v this_o article_n of_o christ_n his_o descent_n into_o hell_n yet_o do_v they_o great_o differ_v in_o the_o sense_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n as_o it_o seem_v have_v no_o certain_a faith_n therein_o at_o all_o neither_o do_v they_o ascribe_v so_o much_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o their_o church_n which_o the_o true_a church_n can_v never_o want_v as_o to_o be_v able_a to_o explain_v the_o native_a and_o undoubted_a sense_n of_o this_o article_n and_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n to_o use_v m._n roger_n word_n so_o as_o their_o belief_n herein_o be_v only_o negative_a as_o their_o whole_a religion_n be_v which_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o all_o other_o be_v deceive_v beside_o themselves_o and_o yet_o do_v they_o affirm_v nothing_o in_o particular_a and_o let_v
this_o suffice_v for_o this_o article_n 40._o let_v we_o now_o a_o little_a cast_v about_o and_o take_v a_o view_n of_o the_o nine_o article_n in_o order_n as_o the_o creed_n natural_o branch_v it_o and_o it_o be_v this_o credo_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o word_n of_o this_o article_n be_v agree_v upon_o on_o all_o part_n but_o the_o sense_n frame_v catholicam_fw-la thereupon_o and_o believe_v of_o different_a christian_n be_v most_o different_a and_o repugnant_a for_o first_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a &_o true_o catholic_a religion_n do_v according_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o ancient_a father_n which_o be_v a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n of_o their_o faith_n understand_v by_o this_o catholic_a church_n that_o visible_a congregation_n of_o the_o first_o believe_v church_n christian_n gather_v together_o in_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n his_o ascension_n at_o which_o assembly_n the_o holy_a apostle_n themselves_o who_o make_v this_o article_n be_v present_a together_o with_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mother_n of_o god_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n and_o woman_n upon_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v enlighten_v they_o and_o inflame_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o further_o establish_v and_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o truth_n encourage_v they_o to_o go_v forwards_o manful_o without_o fear_n of_o any_o opposite_a humane_a power_n and_o promise_v they_o that_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n &_o assistance_n of_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v with_o they_o and_o the_o director_n of_o they_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n to_o preserve_v this_o church_n and_o holy_a congregation_n in_o all_o necessity_n and_o extremity_n so_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o damnable_a error_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o it_o 41._o moreover_o the_o say_a catholic_a christian_n do_v ever_o understand_v this_o church_n to_o be_v call_v holy_a in_o respect_n both_o of_o the_o great_a sanctity_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o the_o holiness_n of_o many_o of_o her_o child_n who_o beside_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n as_o s._n gregory_n speak_v nay_o over_o and_o above_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n as_o s._n basill_n and_o s._n chyrsostome_n joint_o speak_v 5._o shall_v endeavour_v etiam_fw-la praecepta_fw-la legis_fw-la perfectiori_fw-la virtute_fw-la transcendere_fw-la to_o transcend_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n by_o devout_v themselves_o unto_o the_o observation_n of_o christ_n his_o high_a counsel_n of_o evangelicall_a perfection_n 42._o also_o this_o church_n be_v call_v holy_a for_o the_o immediate_a and_o perpetuate_v assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n inspire_v she_o inward_o direct_v she_o outward_o and_o especial_o for_o the_o mean_n of_o sanctification_n convey_v unto_o she_o through_o the_o conduct_n of_o her_o sacrament_n as_o chief_a and_o most_o holy_a instrument_n to_o that_o effect_n confer_v grace_n for_o our_o assistance_n in_o the_o perform_n of_o all_o good_a work_n whereof_o none_o can_v be_v partaker_n to_o salvation_n out_o of_o this_o church_n 43._o this_o church_n be_v also_o call_v catholic_a for_o the_o reason_n before_o set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n and_o first_o consideration_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v universal_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n and_o so_o have_v hitherto_o continue_v still_o and_o ever_o shall_v to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o further_o it_o have_v these_o sign_n and_o mark_n to_o be_v know_v by_o and_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o all_o heretical_a congregation_n whatsoever_o to_o wit_n antiquity_n universality_n union_n and_o succession_n by_o descent_n of_o bishop_n and_o final_o for_o full_a complement_n it_o have_v that_o communion_n of_o saint_n both_o by_o union_n in_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o sacrament_n which_o no_o other_o schismatical_a conventicle_n or_o heretical_a congregation_n have_v and_o out_o of_o this_o communion_n there_o can_v be_v no_o possibility_n of_o life_n or_o salvation_n 32._o all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o which_o here_o i_o be_o constrain_v to_o omit_v do_v those_o of_o the_o roman_a religion_n understand_v by_o this_o article_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o it_o will_v require_v a_o whole_a volume_n to_o set_v down_o the_o several_a sentence_n discourse_n and_o authority_n of_o ancient_a father_n that_o joint_o concur_v in_o this_o exposition_n and_o explanation_n 44._o but_o now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o we_o cast_v our_o eye_n upon_o the_o state_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o article_n howsoever_o they_o do_v admit_v the_o same_o in_o word_n yea_o and_o subscribe_v thereunto_o in_o their_o ordination_n for_o that_o they_o teach_v their_o rligion_n to_o follow_v their_o state_n as_o their_o state_n bring_v in_o their_o religion_n yet_o exceed_o great_a be_v the_o difference_n and_o large_a be_v their_o conscience_n in_o understand_v the_o same_o as_o may_v appear_v in_o part_n out_o of_o the_o 19_o article_n publish_v by_o m._n rogers_n as_o agree_v upon_o by_o our_o english_a bishop_n concern_v the_o church_n about_o which_o he_o have_v seven_o several_a proposition_n first_o agree_v in_o some_o of_o they_o somewhat_o with_o the_o catholic_n and_o they_o have_v learn_v it_o from_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o as_o their_o usual_a practice_n be_v and_o then_o make_v their_o own_o choice_n to_o dissent_v and_o disagree_v at_o their_o pleasure_n as_o the_o enure_v custom_n of_o all_o heretic_n have_v ever_o be_v 45._o his_o first_o proposition_n than_o be_v this_o there_o be_v a_o church_n 1._o of_o christ_n not_o only_o invisible_a but_o also_o visible_a whereto_o suppose_v he_o to_o understand_v of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n for_o otherwise_o he_o say_v nothing_o we_o do_v also_o agree_v as_o their_o bishop_n church_n in_o like_a manner_n may_v be_v suppose_v to_o do_v and_o yet_o can_v i_o speak_v this_o upon_o my_o own_o knowledge_n that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o common_a know_a tenant_n &_o practice_n of_o their_o academical_a school_n for_o there_o the_o question_n be_v among_o the_o most_o forward_a protestant_n a_o ecclesia_fw-la sit_fw-la invisibilis_fw-la whether_o the_o true_a church_n be_v invisible_a and_o yet_o be_v hold_v affirmitive_o to_o wit_n 86._o that_o it_o be_v invisible_a and_o not_o visible_a to_o mansey_n for_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n tend_v to_o flat_a popery_n which_o they_o can_v endure_v 46._o his_o second_o proposition_n be_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n 2._o which_o we_o affirm_v also_o and_o they_o from_o we_o have_v learn_v so_o to_o speak_v and_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o the_o protestant_n puritan_n and_o other_o sectary_n lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n can_v make_v one_o church_n they_o differ_v so_o fundamental_o among_o themselves_o and_o in_o such_o weighty_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n as_o they_o do_v 47._o his_o three_o assertion_n be_v the_o visible_a church_n be_v a_o catholic_n church_n 3._o m._n rogers_n will_v have_v say_v or_o at_o least_o wise_a shall_v have_v say_v that_o the_o catholic_a be_v a_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o all_o visible_a church_n be_v not_o catholic_a but_o all_o catholic_n church_n be_v visible_a and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o his_o incongruity_n of_o speech_n i_o do_v not_o see_v unless_o he_o mean_v thereby_o to_o steal_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a unto_o every_o visible_a congregation_n of_o sectary_n which_o be_v clear_o overthrow_v by_o the_o definition_n and_o large_a explication_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_a set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n 48._o his_o four_o proposition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v and_o 4._o for_o time_n be_v before_o the_o church_n which_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o scripture_n or_o write_v word_n for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o our_o purpose_n it_o contain_v in_o it_o a_o senseless_a &_o gross_a absurdity_n for_o thereupon_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o before_o moses_n time_n the_o first_o writer_n of_o the_o bible_n which_o be_v more_o than_o two_o thousand_o year_n after_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n god_n have_v no_o church_n because_o there_o be_v extant_a no_o write_v word_n or_o scripture_n which_o be_v very_o ridiculous_a to_o affirm_v but_o the_o only_a refuge_n that_o i_o can_v possible_o perceive_v that_o m._n rogers_n have_v leave_v he_o to_o make_v good_a his_o four_o assertion_n in_o prove_v the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o ancient_a than_o the_o church_n be_v to_o fly_v to_o the_o unwritten_a word_n but_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n neither_o since_o we_o have_v only_o in_o this_o place_n to_o do_v with_o the_o literal_a or_o write_v word_n of_o god_n begin_v
by_o moses_n the_o first_o pen_n man_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o successive_o upon_o sundry_a occasion_n continue_v 49._o m._n rogers_n his_o first_o proposition_n be_v that_o the_o mark_n church_n and_o token_n of_o their_o visible_a church_n be_v the_o due_a and_o true_a administration_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n but_o these_o mark_n be_v not_o admit_v by_o the_o catholic_n but_o worthy_o reject_v for_o that_o they_o be_v as_o hard_o and_o obscure_a to_o find_v out_o and_o as_o much_o controvert_v as_o the_o thing_n itself_o whereof_o they_o shall_v be_v mark_n for_o that_o all_o part_n yea_o all_o sect_n and_o heresy_n do_v pretend_v to_o have_v due_a and_o true_a administration_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o it_o be_v as_o hard_a a_o matter_n to_o determine_v this_o controversy_n as_o the_o other_o viz._n to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o the_o mark_v of_o antiquity_n universality_n unity_n and_o succession_n before_o mention_v and_o give_v by_o catholic_n for_o such_o be_v tertullians_n 1400._o year_n ago_o when_o he_o write_v that_o excellent_a book_n of_o prescription_n and_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n 1200._o year_n since_o to_o take_v away_o your_o late_a imputation_n and_o denomination_n of_o papist_n unto_o catholic_n be_v so_o clear_a and_o evident_a in_o themselves_o that_o present_o they_o will_v distinguish_v betwixt_o one_o church_n and_o another_o betwixt_o roman_a catholic_n and_o all_o heretical_a sectary_n and_o albeit_o some_o sectary_n be_v press_v therewith_o will_v pretend_v to_o have_v these_o mark_n in_o their_o church_n and_o will_v set_v a_o good_a face_n upon_o the_o matter_n and_o challenge_v they_o also_o yet_o be_v these_o word_n out_o before_o they_o be_v aware_a for_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o evident_a against_o they_o they_o present_o give_v over_o their_o claim_n they_o be_v content_a to_o hold_v hand_n of_o run_v to_o other_o obscure_a mark_n the_o common_a plea_n of_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n of_o the_o due_a and_o true_a administration_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n when_o god_n wot_v they_o have_v neither_o word_n nor_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o catholic_a integrity_n and_o sincerity_n 50._o m._n rogers_n six_o proposition_n about_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o wit_n the_o true_a &_o catholic_n church_n 6._o may_v and_o have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n err_v both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o conversation_n which_o assertion_n the_o catholic_n in_o his_o sense_n do_v hold_v for_o so_o blasphemous_a and_o absurd_a yea_o ridiculous_a also_o as_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o for_o if_o this_o be_v true_a that_o the_o true_a visible_a catholic_a church_n spread_v over_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n can_v err_v and_o induce_v into_o error_n then_o be_v there_o no_o surety_n or_o certainty_n in_o the_o world_n no_o not_o in_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o assure_v we_o the_o contrary_a 51._o but_o let_v we_o take_v a_o view_n of_o m._n roger_n proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n for_o confirm_v this_o his_o six_o assertion_n which_o err_v sure_o be_v so_o fantastical_a and_o impertinent_a for_o any_o consequence_n to_o be_v draw_v from_o they_o so_o absurd_a in_o reason_n and_o ridiculous_a in_o religion_n that_o no_o man_n of_o judgement_n or_o conscience_n can_v read_v they_o without_o indignation_n and_o laughter_n as_o by_o the_o view_n will_v appear_v for_o thus_o he_o set_v they_o down_o in_o his_o own_o word_n only_o i_o will_v add_v the_o inference_n upon_o every_o probation_n out_o of_o scripture_n his_o first_o place_n be_v take_v heed_n matth._n 24._o 4._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v believe_v it_o not_o matth._n 23._o 26._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisye_n and_o of_o the_o leaven_n of_o herod_n mar._n 8._o 15._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v many_o shall_v be_v deceive_v yea_o the_o very_a elect_a be_v it_o possible_a matth._n 24._o 11._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n upon_o the_o earth_n luc._n 18._o 8._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v we_o know_v in_o part_n 1_o cor._n 13._o 12._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v beware_v of_o dog_n therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v beware_v of_o evil_a work_n beware_v of_o concision_n philip._n 3._o v._n 2._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v god_n shall_v send_v they_o strong_a illusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n 2._o thess._n 9_o 10._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o sound_a proof_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 52._o these_o be_v those_o clear_a text_n that_o m._n rogers_n bring_v forth_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o universal_a christian_a visible_a catholic_a church_n for_o that_o only_o we_o now_o treat_v of_o may_v be_v deceive_v and_o have_v err_v determine_v matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o as_o you_o see_v here_o be_v not_o one_o word_n that_o be_v speak_v or_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o say_v universal_a catholic_a church_n but_o only_a caveat_n give_v to_o the_o church_n to_o beware_v of_o particular_a deceaver_n heretic_n pharisy_n herod_n &_o the_o like_a and_o consequent_o these_o place_n be_v so_o idle_o urge_v and_o so_o absurd_o apply_v by_o the_o author_n that_o i_o shall_v waste_v time_n in_o spend_v any_o more_o labour_n about_o peruse_v they_o any_o further_a only_o one_o of_o his_o place_n i_o will_v but_o touch_v in_o one_o word_n many_o say_v christ_n shall_v be_v deceive_v yea_o the_o very_a elect_a if_o it_o be_v possible_a out_o of_o which_o place_n for_o the_o overthrow_v of_o m._n roger_n proposition_n and_o infer_v the_o clean_a contrary_a assertion_n i_o reason_v thus_o and_o let_v tribunal_n syllogismi_fw-la umpire_n betwixt_o we_o both_o which_o be_v the_o better_a and_o fit_a consequence_n deduce_v out_o of_o this_o place_n if_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o elect_n shall_v be_v deceive_v though_o many_o be_v deceive_v than_o the_o church_n comprehend_v the_o elect_a as_o a_o part_n of_o she_o can_v be_v beceive_v sed_fw-la verum_fw-la primum_fw-la for_o truth_n itself_o have_v speak_v it_o and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o those_o word_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la &_o secundum_fw-la the_o like_a consequence_n i_o will_v infer_v out_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n but_o the_o place_n be_v so_o absurd_o and_o against_o all_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n urge_v that_o they_o be_v not_o long_o to_o be_v stand_v upon_o 53._o the_o like_a miserable_a course_n or_o rather_o more_o pitiful_a if_o possible_o it_o may_v be_v do_v he_o take_v to_o prove_v the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o proposition_n which_o be_v that_o the_o say_v catholic_a visible_a church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n for_o that_o be_v the_o question_n and_o not_o his_o idle_a word_n of_o err_a in_o conversation_n and_o first_o he_o do_v alleag_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n iniquity_n shall_v be_v increase_v and_o the_o love_n of_o many_o shall_v wax_v can_v matth._n 24._o 12._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n second_o he_o cit_v that_o of_o s._n paul_n restore_v &c_n &c_n lest_o thou_o also_o be_v tempt_v gal._n 6._o 1._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n three_o i_o do_v not_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o i_o will_v but_o the_o evil_n which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o do_v i_o if_o i_o do_v that_o which_o i_o will_v not_o it_o be_v no_o more_o i_o that_o do_v it_o but_o the_o sin_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o rom._n 7._o 19_o 20._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n four_o there_o be_v a_o fight_n even_o in_o the_o best_a man_n and_o member_n of_o christ_n rom._n 7._o 23_o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n belong_v to_o life_n and_o manner_n for_o this_o must_v be_v his_o conclusion_n out_o of_o every_o one_o of_o these_o place_n as_o his_o former_a of_o doctrine_n be_v out_o of_o the_o other_o and_o be_v not_o these_o goodly_a argument_n to_o prove_v his_o assertion_n his_o assertion_n as_o you_o have_v often_o hear_v be_v that_o the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n belong_v to_o manner_n to_o wit_n in_o define_v and_o final_o determine_v this_o be_v good_a that_o be_v bad_a this_o be_v lawful_a that_o unlawful_a and_o the_o like_a and_o he_o come_v in_o with_o his_o misapply_v text_n to_o prove_v that_o particular_a man_n may_v have_v infirmity_n in_o they_o and_o fight_v of_o their_o passion_n or_o concupiscence_n do_v he_o not_o hit_v the_o nail_n on_o the_o head_n
book_n of_o sacerdot_n priesthood_n do_v very_o well_o declare_v 4._o and_o now_o to_o come_v unto_o these_o counsel_n and_o 327._o to_o speak_v particular_o of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o as_o they_o lie_v in_o order_n the_o council_n of_o nice_n be_v gather_v together_o somewhat_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o first_o great_a ecclesiastical_a assembly_n of_o all_o the_o world_n meet_v together_o by_o their_o bishop_n in_o this_o general_a council_n be_v for_o the_o censure_a and_o suppress_v of_o two_o capital_a and_o damnable_a heresy_n that_o then_o invade_v and_o infest_a the_o church_n of_o christ._n the_o first_o be_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o arian_n and_o this_o impugn_a nay_o flat_o deny_v the_o second_o person_n his_o identity_n of_o essence_n to_o wit_n the_o son_n his_o equality_n of_o substance_n and_o hodhead_n with_o the_o father_n grant_v he_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d like_v unto_o the_o father_n but_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n which_o be_v the_o faith_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o those_o day_n 5._o the_o second_o heresy_n be_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o quartadeciman_o concern_v the_o celebrate_n of_o easter-day_n of_o which_o heresy_n to_o speak_v any_o thing_n in_o particular_a at_o this_o time_n i_o intend_v not_o since_o it_o be_v not_o to_o my_o present_a purpose_n only_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n unto_o the_o author_n of_o the_o three_o conversion_n of_o england_n where_o this_o point_n be_v both_o substantial_o and_o punctual_o discuss_v the_o main_n point_n whereof_o i_o be_o to_o treat_v in_o this_o place_n be_v to_o intimate_v unto_o the_o reader_n how_o both_o these_o heresy_n of_o the_o arian_n and_o the_o heretical_a quartadeciman_o be_v determine_v censure_v and_o anathematise_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o sovereign_a and_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a tribunal_n i_o mean_v the_o first_o general_n council_n of_o nice_a which_o consist_v as_o s._n ambrose_n observe_v allude_v to_o the_o just_a number_n gratian._n of_o abraham_n his_o soldier_n of_o three_o hundred_o &_o eighteen_o bishop_n gather_v from_o all_o part_n of_o christendom_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o general_n council_n that_o can_v be_v assemble_v until_o that_o time_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o most_o bloody_a and_o cruel_a persecution_n that_o have_v continue_v for_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o prcedentage_n 6._o and_o here_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v that_o albeit_o that_o three_o other_o provincial_a national_a counsel_n be_v record_v to_o have_v be_v celebrate_v before_o this_o of_o nice_n and_o after_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n act._n 15._o to_o wit_n one_o at_o rome_n of_o 60._o bishop_n against_o novatus_fw-la under_o decius_n the_o cruel_a emperor_n and_o cornelius_n the_o martyr_a pope_n another_o at_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n under_o dioclesian_n the_o three_o at_o neocaesarea_n under_o constantine_n father_n and_o pope_n 252_o melchiade_n according_a to_o prateolus_n his_o account_n yet_o this_o council_n 308_o of_o nyce_n be_v the_o first_o great_a &_o glorious_a ecclesiastical_a tribunal_n which_o be_v public_o erect_v in_o the_o christian_a 311._o church_n for_o all_o nation_n to_o repair_v unto_o after_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christ._n 7._o the_o second_o general_a council_n be_v that_o of_o constantinople_n somewhat_o more_o than_o fifty_o year_n after_o in_o the_o year_n of_o 383._o our_o lord_n 383._o and_o it_o consist_v of_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o bishop_n gather_v together_o against_o macedonius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o open_o deny_v and_o blaspheme_v against_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o which_o damnable_a heresy_n of_o he_o both_o he_o and_o all_o that_o partake_v with_o his_o heretical_a faction_n be_v condemn_v censure_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o deliver_v over_o to_o satan_n for_o that_o they_o blaspheme_v against_o the_o three_o sacred_a person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o this_o second_o great_a and_o general_a council_n be_v hold_v under_o gratian_n and_o theodosius_n emperor_n and_o under_o damasus_n then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 8._o the_o three_o general_n council_n be_v that_o which_o be_v 434._o assemble_v at_o ephesus_n almost_o other_o fifty_o year_n after_o that_o again_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n incarnation_n 434._o this_o council_n consist_v of_o two_o hundred_o bishop_n gather_v against_a another_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n name_v nestorius_n but_o a_o archhereticke_n and_o it_o be_v hold_v under_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n and_o pope_n celestinus_fw-la this_o nestorius_n as_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n in_o his_o golden_a tract_n against_o heresy_n and_o 17._o chapter_n describe_v his_o heresy_n whilst_o he_o make_v show_v of_o distinguish_v two_o nature_n in_o christ_n he_o sudden_o bring_v in_o two_o person_n and_o by_o a_o execrable_a impiety_n thereby_o make_v two_o christ_n the_o one_o god_n the_o other_o man_n the_o one_o beget_v of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o other_o bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n his_o mother_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v further_o aver_v that_o holy_a mary_n be_v not_o to_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o mother_n of_o god_n but_o the_o mother_n of_o christ_n because_o forsooth_o that_o christ_n which_o be_v god_n be_v not_o bear_v of_o she_o but_o the_o christ_n which_o be_v man_n hitherto_o my_o author_n and_o for_o this_o damnable_a heresy_n be_v nestorius_n condemn_v by_o this_o three_o council_n &_o worthy_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n howbeit_o i_o must_v confess_v that_o i_o can_v see_v how_o calvin_n &_o beza_n upon_o the_o point_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n and_o hypostatical_a union_n with_o diverse_a other_o protestant_n follow_v they_o 24._o can_v possible_o avoid_v this_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n but_o that_o nestorianisme_n must_v follow_v as_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o deliver_v upon_o the_o point_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n and_o union_n 9_o the_o four_o general_a council_n be_v that_o of_o chalcedon_n and_o this_o be_v some_o twenty_o year_n and_o upwardes_o after_o the_o after_o foresay_a counsel_n of_o ephesus_n in_o which_o council_n there_o be_v assemble_v six_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o bishop_n archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n this_o great_a assembly_n be_v gather_v against_o on_o eutiches_n a_o archimandrite_n or_o abbot_n of_o constantinople_n in_o like_a manner_n who_o so_o confound_v the_o nature_n in_o christ_n that_o he_o absolute_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v two_o distinct_a nature_n in_o he_o for_o which_o monstrous_a opinion_n of_o he_o differ_v from_o the_o canon_n of_o catholic_n faith_n he_o be_v condemn_v together_o with_o his_o fautor_n &_o partner_n of_o his_o heretical_a faction_n i_o mean_v dioscorus_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n as_o be_v nestorius_n another_o archbishop_n before_o he_o for_o hold_v two_o person_n in_o christ._n and_o this_o famous_a and_o through_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n renown_a council_n be_v asseble_v and_o hold_v under_o martian_a that_o then_o sway_v the_o empire_n and_o s._n leo_n the_o first_o than_o bishop_n of_o the_o apostlicall_a sea_n of_o rome_n 10._o and_o now_o to_o make_v use_n in_o general_a of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v concern_v the_o four_o counsel_n by_o some_o particular_a application_n and_o illation_n the_o inference_n must_v needs_o be_v this_o that_o if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v indeed_o admit_v and_o reverence_v these_o four_o first_o general_n council_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v his_o majesty_n be_v of_o opinion_n it_o do_v and_o their_o act_n of_o parliament_n confirm_v the_o same_o then_o do_v it_o follow_v by_o necessary_a and_o inevitable_a consequence_n though_o the_o conclusion_n overthrow_v a_o main_n ground_n of_o protestanticall_a religion_n that_o they_o must_v needs_o will_v they_o will_v they_o grant_v the_o catholic_a church_n not_o only_o to_o have_v be_v visible_a at_o this_o time_n but_o also_o to_o have_v be_v in_o great_a splendour_n and_o magnificence_n otherwise_o how_o can_v it_o possible_o be_v that_o fix_v hundred_o and_o thirty_o bishop_n can_v assemble_v and_o meet_v so_o ready_o together_o and_o all_o these_o for_o the_o most_o part_n out_o of_o the_o eastern_a part_n of_o christendom_n only_o to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o west_n 11._o furthermore_o for_o as_o much_o as_o our_o english_a church_n in_o admit_v these_o counsel_n and_o that_o in_o the_o great_a consistory_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o high_a court_n of_o parliament_n do_v thereby_o acknowledge_v and_o condescend_v unto_o that_o this_o external_a visible_a church_n consist_v of_o good_a and_o bad_a be_v christ_n true_a church_n endue_v with_o all_o the_o privilege_n above_o mention_v of_o
ecclesiastical_a power_n piety_n purity_n sanctity_n &_o the_o rest_n i_o will_v ask_v first_o how_o this_o so_o visible_a a_o church_n so_o conspicuous_a for_o majesty_n so_o illustrious_a for_o sanctity_n err_v so_o adorn_v and_o beautify_v with_o all_o sort_n of_o heavenly_a grace_n and_o eclestiall_a verity_n shall_v or_o can_v afterward_o grow_v to_o be_v invisible_a be_v spoil_v of_o her_o dignity_n bereave_v of_o her_o authority_n be_v rob_v of_o her_o sanctity_n and_o loose_v all_o her_o grace_n and_o verity_n or_o how_o of_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n be_v it_o possible_a that_o she_o shall_v become_v the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n protestant_n principle_n may_v imagine_v this_o but_o this_o over_o throw_v the_o very_a principle_n of_o all_o christian_a religion_n for_o how_o can_v the_o late_a be_v preserve_v inviolable_o if_o the_o former_a be_v so_o unstable_a or_o from_o who_o can_v we_o suck_v the_o pure_a milk_n of_o christian_a religion_n or_o receive_v the_o strong_a food_n of_o the_o high_a mystery_n of_o divinity_n if_o it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o mother_n learning_n wisdom_n and_o tradition_n and_o now_o to_o follow_v this_o heathenish_a and_o irreligious_a principle_n of_o the_o protestant_n a_o little_a further_o if_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v the_o former_a mention_v visible_a catholic_a church_n of_o these_o general_a counsel_n if_o this_o i_o say_v have_v thus_o fall_v by_o false_a doctrine_n as_o the_o protestant_n imagine_v than_o this_o apostasy_n and_o defection_n must_v either_o begin_v first_o from_o all_o or_o from_o one_o or_o from_o a_o few_o only_o to_o the_o part_n then_o if_o from_o all_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o so_o great_a a_o body_n nay_o christ_n own_o body_n mystical_a for_o so_o s._n augustine_n call_v it_o found_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n propagate_v by_o the_o mynistery_n of_o the_o apostle_n water_v continual_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o many_o million_o of_o martyr_n &_o disperse_v over_o the_o visible_a face_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o say_v and_o demand_v how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o this_o church_n shall_v be_v corrupt_v all_o at_o once_o and_o that_o by_o willing_a corruption_n of_o affection_n and_o judgement_n 12._o but_o if_o this_o defection_n vain_o and_o ydle_o suppose_v by_o the_o protestant_n do_v begin_v either_o from_o one_o or_o arise_v from_o a_o few_o private_a man_n contrary_a to_o the_o main_n current_n of_o the_o church_n doctrine_n and_o tradition_n which_o have_v continue_v and_o lineal_o succeed_v in_o the_o century_n of_o the_o church_n from_o christ_n time_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n then_o will_v no_o doubt_v the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n which_o now_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a key_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o by_o censure_v and_o condemn_v archbishop_n abbot_n &_o patriarch_n as_o have_v be_v see_v have_v resist_v &_o several_o punish_v these_o suppose_a noveltye_n and_o new_a fangle_n in_o religion_n and_o true_o albeit_o we_o shall_v set_v aside_o the_o promise_n and_o providence_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n for_o conserve_n this_o his_o church_n which_o he_o have_v buy_v with_o so_o great_a a_o pricc_fw-la as_o his_o own_o precious_a blood_n and_o bring_v unto_o such_o eminent_a greatness_n at_o this_o very_a time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o be_v more_o than_o four_o hundred_o year_n after_o his_o ascension_n yet_o in_o all_o humane_a reason_n set_v the_o light_n of_o religion_n apart_o it_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o imagine_v how_o such_o a_o body_n christ_n his_o body_n with_o such_o a_o vigilant_a senate_n and_o head_n over_o it_o shall_v by_o secret_a stealth_n or_o little_a and_o little_a be_v infect_v corrupt_a poison_a and_o consume_v as_o their_o phrase_n be_v with_o popery_n heresy_n superstition_n or_o innovation_n and_o all_o without_o sense_n or_o feeling_n resist_a and_o complain_v or_o any_o record_n leave_v thereof_o in_o author_n of_o antiquity_n and_o yet_o if_o we_o will_v give_v credit_n unto_o the_o protestant_n and_o suffer_v their_o religion_n to_o set_v the_o least_o footing_n in_o the_o church_n we_o must_v against_o all_o sense_n reason_n faith_n and_o religion_n imagine_v and_o believe_v all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o to_o wit_n that_o such_o and_o so_o potent_a a_o body_n so_o fortify_v with_o defence_n by_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o steal_v away_o from_o itself_o and_o from_o god_n also_o as_o that_o it_o be_v lose_v pervert_v corrupt_v conquer_v by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n make_v babylon_n the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n and_o city_n of_o satan_n before_o any_o man_n be_v aware_a of_o it_o and_o be_v not_o these_o position_n of_o protestant_n monstrous_a paradox_n strange_a idea_n &_o chimaera_n which_o no_o man_n of_o perfect_a sense_n can_v believe_v 13._o i_o read_v in_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o be_v enlighten_v with_o so_o great_a a_o measure_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n very_o earnest_a reprehension_n and_o severe_a invective_n against_o the_o absurdity_n of_o these_o imagination_n let_v s._n augustine_n one_o that_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v full_a of_o reverence_n in_o some_o of_o the_o protestant_n mouth_n speak_v for_o all_o illa_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la say_v he_o quae_fw-la fuit_fw-la omnium_fw-la gentium_fw-la iam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la periji_fw-it hoc_fw-la dicunt_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o illa_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la 101_o o_o impudentem_fw-la vocem_fw-la illa_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la quia_fw-la tu_fw-la in_o illa_fw-la non_fw-la es_fw-la vide_fw-la ne_fw-la tu_fw-la ideo_fw-la non_fw-la sis_fw-la nam_fw-la illa_fw-la erit_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la tu_fw-la non_fw-la sis_fw-la that_o church_n which_o be_v propagate_v and_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n consist_v church_n of_o all_o nation_n as_o now_o at_o the_o time_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v it_o now_o no_o more_o be_v she_o perish_v or_o vanish_v away_o so_o say_v those_o that_o be_v not_o in_o she_o o_o impudent_a voice_n be_v not_o she_o because_o thou_o be_v not_o in_o she_o see_v lest_o therefore_o thou_o be_v not_o for_o she_o will_v be_v though_o thou_o be_v not_o 14._o thus_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o day_n argue_v against_o the_o donatist_n who_o say_v then_o just_a as_o our_o protestant_n do_v now_o when_o they_o be_v press_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a visible_a church_n that_o indeed_o that_o have_v be_v for_o a_o time_n the_o true_a church_n but_o that_o afterwards_o it_o perish_v it_o fail_v and_o fall_v into_o apostasy_n apostatavit_fw-la perijt_fw-la it_o do_v apostatate_n and_o perish_v except_o only_o in_o the_o people_n who_o only_o in_o their_o own_o judgement_n make_v the_o true_a church_n indeed_o 15._o and_o can_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n be_v more_o like_a than_o this_o to_o our_o case_n do_v not_o the_o protestant_n and_o the_o donatist_n so_o conspire_v together_o that_o a_o man_n can_v distinguish_v they_o by_o their_o voice_n the_o protestant_n acknowledge_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o christian_a catholic_a church_n under_o these_o four_o counsel_n for_o the_o space_n almost_o of_o five_o hundred_o year_n together_o neither_o can_v he_o choose_v but_o confess_v since_o the_o point_n have_v be_v so_o often_o extort_a from_o he_o the_o outward_a lustre_n hierarchy_n government_n and_o authority_n thereof_o but_o if_o you_o ask_v he_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o than_o he_o will_v answer_v with_o the_o donatist_n suit_n &_o non_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o it_o be_v not_o now_o or_o at_o least_o wise_a not_o in_o that_o perfection_n of_o authority_n as_o than_o it_o be_v and_o if_o you_o demand_v of_o he_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o that_o again_o about_o the_o time_n that_o luther_n spring_v up_o he_o will_v not_o stick_v flat_o to_o blaspheme_v with_o the_o same_o donatist_n apostatavit_fw-la perijt_fw-la it_o have_v fall_v into_o apostasy_n it_o have_v perish_v which_o speech_n you_o have_v hear_v s._n augustine_n before_o call_v impudentem_fw-la vocem_fw-la a_o impudent_a voice_n but_o present_o after_o in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n he_o term_v it_o by_o far_o worse_a epitheton_n as_o blasphemous_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o though_o i_o have_v touch_v before_o yet_o will_v i_o repeat_v it_o here_o again_o for_o the_o better_a impression_n of_o it_o in_o our_o memory_n and_o the_o great_a detestation_n of_o the_o like_a sin_n 16._o hanc_fw-la vocem_fw-la say_v he_o abominabilem_fw-la &_o detestabilem_fw-la praesumptionis_fw-la &_o falsitatis_fw-la plenam_fw-la nulla_fw-la veritate_fw-la suffultam_fw-la nulla_fw-la sapientia_fw-la illuminatam_fw-la nullo_fw-la sale_n conditam_fw-la vanam_fw-la temerariam_fw-la praecipitem_fw-la perniciosamp_fw-mi raevidit_fw-la spiritus_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o 101._o
with_o a_o chaste_a shamefastness_n and_o love_n so_o s._n cyprian_n in_o that_o excellent_a tract_n of_o his_o deunitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la which_o tract_n alone_o though_o it_o be_v but_o a_o very_a short_a one_o yet_o be_v it_o sufficient_a to_o be_v the_o bane_n of_o all_o heresy_n and_o to_o keep_v any_o man_n desirous_a of_o truth_n within_o the_o bosom_n of_o catholic_a unity_n 23._o with_o s._n cyprian_n agree_v s._n hilary_n write_v to_o the_o church_n same_o effect_n in_o express_a word_n affirm_v hoc_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la proprium_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la tum_fw-la uincat_fw-la cum_fw-la laeditur_fw-la tum_fw-la intelligatur_fw-la cum_fw-la arguitur_fw-la tum_fw-la obtmeat_n cum_fw-la deseritur_fw-la this_o be_v peculiar_a unto_o the_o church_n that_o when_o she_o be_v hurt_v by_o persecution_n than_o she_o win_v and_o overcom_v when_o she_o be_v reprehend_v by_o heretic_n then_o be_v she_o perceive_v that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o she_o be_v misconceive_v she_o make_v herself_o in_o her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v better_o understand_v by_o declaration_n of_o matter_n call_v into_o question_n when_o she_o be_v forsake_v either_o by_o rebellious_a child_n that_o go_v out_o from_o she_o or_o by_o god_n permission_n exercise_v she_o by_o tribulation_n then_o do_v she_o obtain_v the_o victory_n and_o glorious_o triumph_v so_o as_o here_o you_o see_v that_o they_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o the_o church_n of_o their_o time_n but_o of_o all_o other_o ensue_a age_n that_o it_o can_v perish_v or_o be_v corrupt_v and_o with_o these_o agree_v s._n ambrose_n say_v haec_fw-la ergo_fw-la navis_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la si_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la saeculum_fw-la istud_fw-la tamquam_fw-la aliquod_fw-la pelagus_fw-la sortitur_fw-la insestum_fw-la numquam_fw-la eliditur_fw-la ad_fw-la saxum_fw-la numquam_fw-la mergitur_fw-la adprofundum_fw-la so_o speak_v s._n ambrose_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v the_o salomone_n the_o 4._o chapter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o ship_n therefore_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v toss_v upon_o the_o sea_n of_o this_o world_n as_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o albeit_o it_o do_v daily_o find_v and_o feel_v the_o world_n to_o be_v troublesome_a unto_o it_o as_o a_o certain_a tempestuous_a and_o stormy_a sea_n yet_o do_v it_o never_o dash_v and_o split_v in_o piece_n by_o strike_v against_o any_o rock_n nor_o yet_o be_v it_o ever_o dryven_v and_o drown_v to_o the_o bottom_n all_o which_o privilege_n can_v not_o be_v verify_v of_o the_o say_a church_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n can_v become_v a_o harlot_n or_o fall_v away_o from_o christ_n by_o entertain_v any_o damnable_a error_n or_o heresy_n 24._o and_o as_o s._n ambrose_n so_o speak_v s._n hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o isaiah_n his_o word_n be_v these_o super_fw-la petram_fw-la sundatur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nulla_fw-la tempestate_fw-la concutitur_fw-la nullo_fw-la turbine_fw-la ventisque_fw-la subvertitur_fw-la the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o a_o rock_n be_v sh●uered_v with_o no_o tempest_n be_v overwhelm_v and_o overthrow_v by_o no_o fury_n &_o violence_n of_o wind_n whatsoever_o and_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n in_o another_o place_n put_v a_o real_a distinction_n betwixt_o the_o synogogue_n of_o the_o jew_n &_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o especial_o betwixt_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v unto_o both_o assume_v the_o speech_n of_o christ_n and_o speak_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o person_n of_o our_o saviour_n linquetur_fw-la domus_fw-la vestra_fw-la deserta_fw-la your_o house_n your_o church_n your_o synagogue_n shall_v be_v leave_v desolate_a and_o empty_a unto_o you_o 23._o but_o as_o for_o the_o christian_a church_n say_v he_o aeternam_fw-la habebit_fw-la possessionem_fw-la for_o that_o christ_n promise_v unto_o his_o disciple_n behold_v i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o or_o as_o other_o readins_n have_v it_o i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o same_o speech_n be_v reassume_v and_o reiterated_a by_o he_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o nine_o of_o the_o prophet_n amos_n and_o upon_o the_o 28._o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n 25._o and_o here_o i_o may_v tire_v out_o both_o the_o reader_n and_o myself_o also_o with_o allege_v the_o unamine_fw-la consent_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n of_o their_o day_n can_v never_o perish_v apostatate_n or_o fall_v away_o from_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o regard_n of_o christ_n his_o promise_n make_v unto_o it_o and_o yet_o the_o contrary_a heretical_a tenant_n be_v a_o common_a receive_a doctrine_n in_o the_o protestant_n school_n in_o this_o last_o &_o worst_a age_n of_o the_o world_n for_o do_v not_o the_o protestant_n pro_fw-la aris_fw-la &_o focis_fw-la as_o though_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o the_o life_n or_o death_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v no_o less_o stiff_o &_o peremptory_o defend_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o hold_v these_o four_o general_a counsel_n which_o be_v admit_v by_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o church_n and_o parliament_n of_o england_n and_o fourteen_o other_o no_o less_o general_n from_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n to_o the_o last_o of_o trent_n this_o church_n say_v i_o descend_v by_o succession_n of_o christian_a people_n and_o by_o lawful_a and_o ecclesiastical_a ordination_n of_o prelate_n pastor_n and_o bishop_n for_o government_n of_o the_o same_o have_v after_o the_o aforesaid_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o little_a &_o little_a say_v the_o protestant_n apostate_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o true_a doctrine_n and_o have_v leave_v their_o room_n and_o place_n for_o protestant_n to_o enter_v and_o supply_v their_o defect_n and_o this_o be_v just_a like_o the_o allegation_n and_o pretence_n of_o the_o donatist_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n and_o no_o marvel_n that_o protestant_n and_o donatist_n thus_o conspire_v against_o the_o true_a church_n for_o sure_o the_o right_a of_o the_o donatist_n be_v as_o good_a to_o lay_v claim_n thereunto_o as_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o protestant_n for_o aught_o that_o i_o can_v see_v to_o the_o contrary_n and_o let_v this_o suffice_v for_o my_o first_o consideration_n the_o second_o consideration_n my_o second_o consideration_n concern_v this_o present_a subject_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n receive_v by_o the_o protestant_n lay_v parliament_n as_o be_v already_o premise_v council_n shall_v be_v this_o that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o ecclesiastical_a devise_n and_o invention_n of_o call_v general_a counsel_n and_o this_o spiritual_a authority_n in_o erect_v this_o great_a consistory_n and_o supreme_a tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o decide_n and_o determine_v of_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n that_o may_v possible_o arise_v therein_o either_o by_o the_o friend_n or_o rather_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v presume_v to_o have_v come_v peculiar_o and_o proceed_v original_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n partly_o for_o that_o the_o first_o form_n origin_n and_o practice_n thereof_o be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o you_o shall_v read_v act._n 15._o according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v former_o note_v and_o partly_o and_o especial_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o say_v holy_a ghost_n that_o ever-blessed_n and_o never_o err_a spirit_n of_o truth_n testify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o high_a and_o sovereign_a command_a authority_n use_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o first_o counsel_n decree_v visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o why_o i_o say_v this_o be_v so_o have_v the_o protestant_n in_o our_o day_n have_v now_o almost_o have_v a_o full_a age_n since_o their_o defection_n from_o catholic_a roman_a religion_n never_o as_o yet_o call_v a_o general_a council_n among_o themselves_o to_o repair_v their_o own_o breach_n reconcile_v their_o own_o emnity_n determine_v and_o decide_v their_o own_o controversy_n which_o as_o before_o i_o have_v show_v be_v both_o many_o and_o weighty_a implacable_a and_o irreconciliable_a true_o it_o seem_v unto_o i_o that_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o spirit_n with_o the_o ancient_a apostolic_a church_n that_o gather_v these_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n to_o hold_v all_o in_o one_o union_n and_o communion_n nay_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v lead_v or_o rather_o mislead_v with_o a_o contrary_a spirit_n of_o schism_n heresy_n and_o division_n they_o will_v have_v tread_v in_o the_o steep_v of_o these_o ancient_a father_n and_o have_v imitate_v they_o in_o apply_v the_o sovereign_a remedy_n of_o general_a counsel_n for_o cure_v the_o wound_n of_o their_o own_o homebred_a division_n and_o damnable_a dissension_n at_o least_o wise_a they_o will_v without_o fail_n in_o a_o whole_a age_n have_v call_v some_o one_o forasmuch_o as_o
ter_z simul_fw-la in_o faciem_fw-la eorum_fw-la &_o aures_fw-la insufflando_fw-la breathe_v three_o time_n one_o after_o a_o other_o on_o their_o face_n and_o ear_n and_o so_o we_o catechise_v consecrate_v and_o cure_v they_o ordain_v that_o they_o live_v a_o great_a while_n in_o our_o church_n and_o hear_v the_o scripture_n and_o then_o we_o do_v baptize_v they_o so_o enact_v that_o ancient_a canon_n conclude_v by_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o bishop_n and_o now_o whether_o this_o antiquity_n be_v more_o observe_v or_o better_o resemble_v by_o the_o protestant_n or_o roman_a church_n i_o leave_v the_o point_n to_o every_o man_n to_o consider_v of_o for_o intend_v brevity_n i_o mean_v not_o to_o prosecute_v matter_n at_o large_a but_o only_o to_o point_v at_o these_o two_o thing_n by_o the_o way_n that_o may_v show_v conformity_n or_o deformity_n between_o that_o ancient_a church_n and_o the_o protestant_n or_o catholic_a roman_a church_n at_o this_o day_n 44._o out_o of_o the_o three_o council_n hold_v at_o ephesus_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n 42_o 8._o sundry_a weighty_a point_n occur_v and_o represent_v themselves_o worthy_a of_o observation_n albeit_o all_o of_o they_o be_v over_o long_o here_o to_o be_v recite_v and_o first_o i_o remember_v the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v and_o condemn_v of_o nestorius_n the_o archhereticke_n as_o it_o be_v most_o faithful_o record_v ephesus_n by_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o commonitorium_fw-la the_o 42._o chapter_n and_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o by_o he_o who_o live_v in_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o council_n and_o for_o aught_o we_o know_v may_v be_v present_a there_o at_o in_o this_o manner_n this_o council_n of_o ephesus_n discuss_v and_o reason_v touch_v the_o establish_n of_o some_o rule_n of_o faith_n lest_o any_o profane_a novelty_n like_v to_o the_o armenian_a treachery_n may_v creep_v into_o this_o council_n all_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o priest_n thither_o assemble_v which_o be_v almost_o 200._o conclude_v and_o agree_v upon_o this_o as_o best_a and_o most_o catholic_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o opinion_n and_o judgment_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n shall_v be_v bring_v forth_o before_o the_o council_n such_o father_n as_o have_v be_v either_o martyr_n or_o consessor_n or_o at_o least_o constant_a catholic_a priest_n and_o according_a unto_o their_o joint_a consent_n and_o unamine_fw-la decree_n the_o point_n then_o controvert_v betwixt_o nestorius_n and_o s._n cyrill_n shall_v be_v decide_v and_o final_o determine_v this_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n first_o enact_v and_o according_a unto_o this_o nestorius_n as_o contrary_a to_o catholic_a verity_n be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n and_o bless_a s._n cyrill_n be_v judge_v consonant_a unto_o antiquity_n so_o vincentius_n and_o now_o will_v the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o make_v show_v of_o receive_v this_o council_n stand_v to_o this_o rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n about_o the_o examine_n of_o doctrine_n by_o the_o father_n enact_v and_o put_v in_o practice_n by_o this_o council_n against_o nestorius_n and_o will_v they_o submit_v all_o their_o judgment_n unto_o the_o assembly_n of_o father_n as_o this_o council_n do_v 45._o my_o second_o observation_n out_o of_o this_o council_n be_v this_o that_o when_o great_a stir_n and_o trouble_n be_v expect_v by_o the_o pious_a and_o religious_a emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinianus_n by_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a concourse_n of_o people_n of_o all_o sort_n unto_o that_o place_n especial_o many_o favourite_n of_o nestorius_n the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n against_o who_o this_o council_n be_v gather_v it_o seem_v necessary_a unto_o the_o say_a emperor_n to_o send_v thither_o a_o earl_n of_o their_o court_n name_v candidianus_n who_o shall_v represent_v their_o person_n for_o see_v peace_n and_o good_a order_n keep_v but_o yet_o with_o express_a protestation_n that_o it_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o imperat._n nor_o any_o other_o secular_a man_n to_o have_v any_o deal_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n in_o that_o council_n and_o this_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o i_o observe_v which_o now_o follow_v candidianum_fw-la say_v they_o praeclarissimum_fw-la religiosorum_fw-la domesticorum_fw-la comitem_fw-la ad_fw-la sacram_fw-la pestram_fw-la synodum_fw-la abire_fw-la iussimus_fw-la sed_fw-la ea_fw-la lege_fw-la &_o conditione_n ut_fw-la tum_fw-la quaestionibus_fw-la &_o controversiis_fw-la quae_fw-la circa_fw-la fidei_fw-la dogmata_fw-la incidunt_fw-la nihil_fw-la quicquam_fw-la common_a habeat_fw-la nefas_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la qui_fw-la sanctissimorum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la numero_fw-la &_o catalogo_fw-la adseriptus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la illum_fw-la ecclesiastitis_fw-la negotijs_fw-la &_o consultationibꝰ_n seize_v immiscere_fw-la we_o have_v command_v the_o most_o honourable_a count_n candidian_n one_o of_o our_o religious_a family_n to_o go_v unto_o your_o holy_a synod_n but_o with_o this_o charge_n and_o condition_n that_o he_o have_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v with_o any_o question_n of_o controversy_n that_o fall_v out_o about_o consultation_n matter_n of_o faith_n for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o that_o be_v not_o a_o bishop_n to_o meddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n or_o consultation_n so_o those_o two_o emperor_n which_o convince_v sufficient_o that_o they_o hold_v not_o themselves_o for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o judge_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o inferior_a unto_o bishop_n in_o that_o behalf_n and_o will_v the_o church_n of_o england_n admit_v this_o council_n admit_v this_o also_o 46._o but_o now_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o religious_a emperor_n disclaim_v from_o this_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n over_o the_o council_n so_o i_o find_v that_o celestinus_fw-la then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o same_o to_o appertain_v unto_o he_o and_o it_o be_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n without_o either_o opposition_n or_o contradiction_n grant_v unto_o he_o for_o first_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o be_v present_a himself_o he_o design_v and_o depute_a s._n cyrill_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n to_o be_v his_o substitute_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o own_o letter_n read_z and_o approve_v in_o the_o council_n his_o word_n be_v these_o quamobrem_fw-la nostrae_fw-la sedis_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la 16_o ascita_fw-la nostraque_fw-la vice_n &_o loco_fw-la cum_fw-la potes●tae_fw-la usus_fw-la eiusmodi_fw-la non_fw-la absque_fw-la exquisita_fw-la severitate_fw-la sententiam_fw-la exequeris_fw-la etc._n etc._n wherefore_o you_o take_v the_o authority_n of_o our_o sea_n upon_o you_o and_o use_v our_o room_n and_o place_n with_o the_o power_n thereto_o belong_v shall_v execute_v with_o punctual_a severity_n the_o sentence_n give_v against_o nestorius_n to_o wit_n of_o excommunication_n and_o deposition_n and_o that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o revoke_v his_o heresy_n within_o ten_o day_n after_o this_o our_o admonition_n give_v unto_o he_o that_o you_o present_o provide_v the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n of_o another_o bishop_n and_o let_v he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v by_o all_o manner_n of_o way_n cut_v of_o from_o our_o body_n so_o he_o 47._o thus_o write_v pope_n celestinus_fw-la from_o rome_n where_o he_o have_v hold_v a_o particular_a council_n and_o condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n in_o the_o west_n before_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n be_v gather_v in_o the_o east_n in_o which_o coucell_n of_o ephesus_n he_o not_o be_v able_a to_o be_v present_a as_o be_v aforesaid_a design_v his_o authority_n to_o s._n cyril_n as_o well_o for_o preside_v in_o the_o same_o council_n as_o also_o for_o execute_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n which_o proceed_n of_o celestinus_fw-la be_v recount_v afterward_o again_o by_o the_o say_a council_n and_o approve_v in_o a_o general_a letter_n which_o the_o whole_a council_n write_v unto_o the_o 17_o two_o emperor_n which_o begin_v vestram_fw-la christianissimi_fw-la reges_fw-la etc._n etc._n 48._o but_o this_o be_v confirm_v yet_o further_o for_o that_o the_o say_v holy_a father_n celestinus_fw-la send_v from_o rome_n three_o other_o legate_n to_o join_v with_o s._n cyrill_n in_o that_o legation_n for_o the_o presidence_n of_o the_o council_n whereof_o two_o be_v bishop_n proiectus_fw-la and_o arcadius_n the_o three_o a_o priest_n only_o call_v philip_n who_o always_o be_v admit_v for_o legate_n in_o the_o council_n do_v firm_a &_o subscribe_v their_o name_n after_o s._n cyrill_n before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o rest_n yea_o when_o the_o two_o bishop-legate_n be_v absent_a from_o the_o council_n upon_o any_o occasion_n this_o philip_n though_o but_o a_o priest_n do_v subscribe_v next_o after_o s._n cyrill_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o council_n itself_o tomo_fw-la ephesus_n 2._o cap._n 13._o and_o moreover_o at_o his_o first_o come_v and_o appearance_n in_o the_o council_n he_o use_v this_o speech_n gratias_fw-la agamus_fw-la sanctae_fw-la venerandaeque_fw-la huic_fw-la synodo_fw-la quòd_fw-la literis_fw-la celestini_n sanctissimi_fw-la beatissimique_fw-la
of_o trial_n offer_v and_o allege_v by_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n have_v discourse_v at_o large_a of_o the_o three_o general_a head_n to_o wit_n scripture_n creed_n counsel_n in_o the_o three_o precedent_a chapter_n we_o be_v now_o according_a to_o order_n and_o method_n both_o offer_v unto_o we_o and_o accept_v of_o we_o to_o treat_v of_o the_o last_o general_a head_n in_o this_o subsequent_a chapter_n and_o the_o subject_n we_o have_v how_o in_o hand_n be_v touch_v the_o high_a esteem_n credit_n and_o authority_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o ancient_a father_n unto_o which_o his_o majesty_n do_v appeal_v in_o this_o last_o place_n say_v thus_o i_o do_v reverence_n the_o ancient_a father_n as_o much_o and_o more_o 35._o than_o the_o jesuit_n do_v and_o asmuch_o as_o themselves_o ever_o crave_v for_o what_o ever_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o four_o hundred_o year_n do_v with_o a_o unanime_fw-la consent_n agree_v upon_o to_o be_v believe_v as_o a_o necessary_a point_n of_o salvation_n i_o either_o will_v believe_v it_o also_o or_o at_o least_o will_v be_v humble_o silent_a not_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o condemn_v the_o same_o but_o for_o every_o private_a father_n his_o opinion_n it_o bind_v not_o my_o conscience_n more_o than_o bellarmine_n every_o one_o of_o the_o father_n usual_o contradict_v other_o i_o will_v therefore_o in_o that_o case_n follow_v s._n augustine_n his_o rule_n in_o judge_v their_o opinion_n as_o i_o shall_v 31._o find_v they_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n what_o i_o find_v agreeable_a thereunto_o i_o will_v embrace_v what_o be_v otherwise_o i_o will_v with_o their_o reverence_n reject_v so_o the_o king_n and_o that_o his_o majesty_n for_o his_o part_n have_v also_o a_o good_a meaning_n in_o this_o as_o far_o as_o his_o education_n and_o instruction_n can_v possible_o permit_v and_o further_o that_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o speak_v and_o mean_v like_o a_o good_a catholic_a and_o orthodox_a christian_n i_o do_v with_o all_o diligence_n and_o due_a respect_n of_o loyal_a duty_n unto_o his_o royal_a grace_n endeavour_v to_o persuade_v myself_o 2._o and_o yet_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a and_o apparent_a yea_o obvious_a unto_o the_o eye_n of_o any_o discreet_a indifferent_a judicious_a and_o understand_v man_n that_o his_o excellent_a grace_n have_v be_v notorious_o abuse_v and_o very_o sinister_o a_o erroneous_o inform_v in_o sundry_a passage_n of_o this_o point_n and_o main_n head_n concern_v the_o reverence_n respect_n and_o authority_n due_a to_o the_o father_n of_o god_n church_n and_o that_o by_o such_o statize_v and_o temporize_a minister_n that_o be_v no_o long_o able_a to_o sustain_v their_o weak_a &_o false_a cause_n quaeipsissimo_fw-la svo_fw-la rvit_fw-la pondere_fw-la will_v derive_v the_o shame_n majesty_n blame_v and_o burden_n of_o their_o now_o present_a totter_a religion_n upon_o the_o person_n of_o his_o princely_a majesty_n engage_v he_o thus_o in_o their_o heretical_a quarrel_n and_o therefore_o they_o suggest_v from_o time_n to_o time_n such_o particular_n out_o of_o every_o general_n as_o serve_v rather_o for_o their_o own_o sinister_a respect_n then_o either_o for_o the_o prevention_n of_o error_n or_o decision_n of_o truth_n or_o preservation_n of_o the_o honour_n and_o sovereign_a reputation_n of_o his_o princely_a person_n whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o impressionate_a his_o princely_a hart_n with_o their_o own_o particular_a humorous_a passion_n exagitate_v his_o grace_n with_o their_o odious_a and_o malicious_a calumniation_n bend_v against_o the_o upright_o and_o the_o innocent_a in_o a_o word_n they_o rather_o avert_v his_o affection_n from_o ancient_a catholic_a verity_n and_o pervert_v his_o judgement_n by_o their_o erroneous_a fancy_n and_o late_a upstart_n novelty_n then_o lay_v forth_o the_o plain_n and_o simple_a truth_n unto_o his_o majesty_n though_o they_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v minister_n of_o simple_a truth_n either_o in_o sound_a substance_n or_o sincere_a circumstance_n and_o this_o god_n willing_a we_o shall_v discover_v by_o many_o particular_a passage_n in_o this_o present_a business_n and_o point_n of_o ancient_a father_n that_o we_o have_v now_o in_o hand_n 3._o and_o first_o to_o proceed_v in_o order_n and_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o accusation_n and_o imputation_n lay_v upon_o the_o lesuit_n for_o that_o they_o be_v here_o charge_v according_a to_o that_o which_o have_v be_v suggest_v unto_o his_o majesty_n for_o i_o will_v never_o lay_v this_o imputation_n and_o false_a accusation_n upon_o his_o princely_a person_n that_o they_o do_v not_o reverence_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n indeed_o not_o so_o much_o as_o his_o majesty_n do_v who_o say_v here_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o when_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o sour_a hundred_o year_n do_v with_o a_o unanime_fw-la consent_n agree_v upon_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o a_o necessary_a point_n of_o salvation_n his_o highness_n will_v believe_v it_o also_o or_o at_o least_o will_v be_v humble_o silent_a and_o not_o condemn_v the_o same_o but_o he_o that_o will_v peruse_v and_o read_v over_o the_o learned_a and_o manifold_a laborious_a volume_n of_o the_o jesuit_n shall_v find_v they_o to_o go_v much_o further_a in_o this_o point_n teach_v and_o constant_o assever_v with_o vincentius_n lyrineusis_n and_o with_o the_o joint_a agreement_n of_o antiquity_n that_o the_o unanime_fw-la consent_n of_o father_n upon_o any_o point_n make_v it_o a_o infallible_a truth_n quod_fw-la patres_fw-la &_o doctores_fw-la say_v gregorius_n de_fw-fr valentia_n unanimi_fw-la consensu_fw-la circa_fw-la religionem_fw-la 8._o tradunt_fw-la infallibiliter_fw-la verum_fw-la est_fw-la whatsoever_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n deliver_v with_o one_o consent_n about_o religion_n that_o be_v infallible_o true_a and_o the_o same_o do_v hold_v all_o other_o jesuit_n which_o also_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n before_o they_o do_v confirm_v in_o these_o word_n hos_fw-la ergo_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la divinitus_fw-la per_fw-la tempora_fw-la &_o loca_fw-la dispensatos_fw-la quisquis_fw-la in_o sensu_fw-la catholici_fw-la dogmatis_fw-la unum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la sentientes_fw-la contempserit_fw-la non_fw-la hominem_fw-la contemnit_fw-la sed_fw-la deum_fw-la these_o therefore_o he_o mean_v the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o harese_n church_n give_v and_o grant_v by_o god_n throughout_o all_o age_n and_o place_n whosoever_o shall_v contemn_v they_o agree_v upon_o any_o one_o point_n in_o christ_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o catholic_n doctrine_n he_o contemn_v not_o man_n but_o god_n 4._o and_o this_o be_v ground_v and_o prove_v as_o the_o say_v valentia_n note_v upon_o that_o discourse_n of_o s._n paul_n ephes._n 4._o where_o he_o show_v how_o christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n leave_v his_o church_n furnish_v and_o fence_v with_o all_o kind_n of_o necessary_a furniture_n for_o her_o present_a instruction_n future_a direction_n and_o perpetual_a prescruation_n as_o with_o apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n doctor_n and_o this_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o foresay_a author_n observe_v out_o of_o the_o apostle_n himself_o ut_fw-la non_fw-la circumferamur_fw-la omni_fw-la vento_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v carry_v hither_o and_o thither_o and_o toss_v up_o and_o down_o with_o every_o blast_n of_o doctrine_n 5._o and_o final_o he_o confirm_v the_o same_o by_o show_v that_o this_o great_a absurdity_n will_v otherways_o follow_v that_o if_o the_o whole_a consent_n of_o father_n may_v err_v then_o may_v they_o induce_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o err_v yea_o enforce_v she_o thereunto_o for_o that_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o follow_v and_o believe_v the_o unamine_fw-la consent_n of_o her_o pastor_n doctor_n governor_n and_o teacher_n and_o that_o throughout_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n 6._o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o i_o find_v among_o the_o jesuit_n concern_v the_o account_n and_o reckon_v that_o be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o uniform_a and_o unamine_fw-la consent_n of_o father_n for_o with_o gregory_n de_fw-fr valentia_n as_o now_o i_o have_v say_v do_v agree_v father_n all_o the_o most_o eminent_a and_o principal_a writer_n of_o that_o society_n as_o for_o example_n doctor_n petru_n canis●us_n in_o his_o late_a catechism_n cap._n 11._o cardinal_n bellarmine_n in_o his_o four_o book_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 9_o vasquez_n tom_fw-mi 1._o in_o primam_fw-la part_n disp._n 12._o cap._n 1._o maldonatus_n in_o 6._o joan._n tolet_n upon_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n and_o many_o other_o which_o as_o i_o take_v it_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o than_o here_o be_v grant_v by_o protestant_n unto_o the_o father_n since_o there_o be_v no_o more_o yet_o promise_v and_o profess_v then_o either_o to_o believe_v they_o or_o to_o be_v humble_o silent_a and_o not_o condemn_v they_o 7._o
that_o it_o be_v plain_a madness_n in_o the_o heretic_n to_o make_v so_o small_a account_n of_o they_o nay_o he_o further_o resolve_v and_o with_o mature_a deliberation_n conclude_v that_o the_o dogma_fw-la ticall_a faith_n and_o belief_n of_o all_o these_o father_n conspire_v and_o agree_v together_o in_o one_o be_v to_o be_v defend_v against_o he_o and_o against_o all_o other_o such_o like_a heretic_n as_o he_o be_v no_o other_o way_n than_o christ_n gospel_n be_v to_o be_v defend_v against_o infidel_n his_o word_n be_v these_o 20._o aduersus_fw-la hanc_fw-la autem_fw-la miserabilem_fw-la quam_fw-la deus_fw-la avertat_fw-la insaniam_fw-la sic_fw-la respondendum_fw-la video_fw-la libris_fw-la tuis_fw-la ut_fw-la fides_fw-la queque_fw-la adversus_fw-la te_fw-la father_n desendatur_fw-la istorum_fw-la sicut_fw-la contra_fw-la impios_fw-la &_o christiprofessos_fw-la inimicos_fw-la etiam_fw-la ipsum_fw-la defendetur_fw-la euangelium_fw-la against_o this_o miserable_a desperate_a madness_n of_o thou_o which_o god_n turn_v from_o thou_o i_o do_v see_v that_o i_o must_v so_o answer_v to_o thy_o book_n that_o the_o faith_n of_o these_o father_n be_v defend_v against_o thou_o as_o the_o very_a gospel_n itself_o of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v defend_v against_o impious_a man_n and_o as_o against_o the_o very_a profess_a enemy_n of_o christ._n so_o he_o and_o yet_o in_o another_o place_n press_v again_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o say_a father_n he_o do_v entreat_v his_o adversary_n julian_n to_o believe_v these_o holy_a father_n and_o by_o they_o to_o be_v make_v friend_n with_o he_o yea_o to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n from_o which_o he_o stand_v as_o yet_o separate_v and_o be_v not_o this_o the_o very_a same_o offer_n we_o make_v to_o the_o protestant_n at_o this_o day_n and_o then_o s._n augustine_n go_v on_o forwards_o in_o ratifi_a their_o authority_n sad_v present_o for_o further_a corroboration_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o antiquity_n quod_fw-la credunt_fw-la credo_fw-la quod_fw-la tenent_fw-la teneo_fw-la quod_fw-la circamed_a docent_fw-la doceo_fw-la quod_fw-la praedicant_fw-la praedico_fw-la istis_fw-la crede_fw-la &_o mihi_fw-la credes_fw-la acquiesce_v istis_fw-la &_o quiesces_fw-la à_fw-it me_fw-it etc._n etc._n what_o these_o father_n do_v believe_v i_o do_v believe_v what_o they_o hold_v i_o hold_v what_o they_o teach_v i_o teach_v what_o they_o preach_v i_o preach_v yield_v unto_o these_o and_o you_o will_v yield_v unto_o i_o have_v peace_n with_o these_o and_o you_o will_v have_v peace_n with_o i_o and_o last_o of_o all_o say_v he_o if_o you_o will_v not_o by_o they_o be_v make_v friend_n with_o i_o at_o least_o wise_a be_v not_o you_o by_o i_o make_v enemy_n unto_o they_o a_o golden_a sentence_n and_o then_o he_o go_v forward_o say_n shall_v pelagius_n and_o celestinus_fw-la the_o author_n of_o your_o heresy_n be_v of_o such_o authority_n with_o you_o that_o you_o for_o their_o society_n will_v leave_v the_o fellowship_n and_o company_n of_o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o church_n disperse_v from_o east_n to_o west_n from_o north_n to_o south_n and_o those_o both_o ancient_a and_o near_o unto_o our_o age_n partly_o dead_a and_o yet_o partly_o live_v so_o he_o 21._o which_o speech_n of_o s._n augustine_n do_v seem_v unto_o i_o so_o fit_o and_o proper_o to_o touch_v and_o concern_v the_o protestant_n of_o our_o day_n who_o for_o the_o love_n of_o luther_n &_o calvin_n author_n of_o their_o novelty_n do_v forgo_v all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n not_o only_o ancient_a but_o modern_a also_o as_o that_o nothing_o in_o my_o judgement_n can_v be_v produce_v of_o near_a affinity_n to_o hold_v great_a correspondency_n or_o be_v more_o like_a or_o more_o semblable_a 22._o neither_o yet_o do_v s._n augustine_n determine_v only_o that_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v absolute_o the_o best_a witness_n and_o judge_n in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n that_o arise_v and_o spring_v up_o after_o their_o day_n but_o together_o with_o his_o authority_n which_o have_v be_v alone_o sufficient_a he_o yealede_v a_o very_a substantial_a and_o convince_a reason_n for_o the_o same_o and_o it_o be_v this_o that_o the_o father_n can_v not_o be_v partial_a judge_n of_o such_o cause_n as_o come_v into_o controversy_n after_o their_o death_n for_o that_o they_o give_v forth_o their_o verdict_n and_o judgement_n before_o any_o controversy_n be_v stir_v or_o move_v about_o the_o same_o and_o thus_o much_o do_v his_o word_n import_v as_o they_o follow_v 23._o tunc_fw-la de_fw-la ista_fw-la causa_fw-la iudicaverunt_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n quando_fw-la cosnemo_fw-la dicere_fw-la potest_fw-la perperàm_fw-la quicquam_fw-la vel_fw-la adversari_fw-la velsavere_fw-la propefinen_n potuisse_fw-la nondum_fw-la enim_fw-la extiteratis_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o father_n do_v judge_v of_o this_o cause_n at_o that_o time_n when_o no_o man_n can_v say_v that_o they_o do_v wrongful_o favour_v or_o disfavour_v any_o party_n for_o that_o you_o pelagian_n be_v not_o then_o in_o the_o world_n with_o who_o we_o may_v have_v contention_n about_o this_o question_n etc._n etc._n they_o do_v not_o attend_v unto_o any_o friendship_n either_o with_o we_o or_o with_o you_o they_o do_v not_o exercise_v amity_n or_o enmity_n with_o either_o of_o we_o they_o be_v angry_a neither_o with_o you_o nor_o with_o we_o neither_o yet_o have_v they_o commiseration_n towards_o any_o of_o augustine_n our_o part_n that_o which_o they_o find_v in_o the_o church_n they_o hold_v that_o which_o they_o learn_v they_o teach_v that_o which_o they_o recyve_v and_o learn_v from_o their_o father_n by_o tradition_n they_o teach_v and_o leave_v unto_o their_o child_n we_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o plead_v with_o you_o before_o these_o judge_n &_o yet_o by_o they_o be_v our_o case_n decide_v and_o determine_v nor_o you_o nor_o we_o be_v know_v unto_o they_o and_o yet_o do_v we_o out_o of_o their_o work_n produce_v their_o sentence_n against_o you_o we_o have_v as_o yet_o no_o strife_n with_o you_o nor_o plead_v any_o cause_n and_o yet_o have_v we_o conquer_v you_o by_o their_o verdict_n hitherto_o be_v the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n 24._o which_o when_o i_o have_v consider_v &_o ponder_v well_o with_o myself_o as_o also_o reflect_v upon_o all_o s._n augustine_n his_o former_a sentence_n compare_v they_o all_o together_o and_o confer_v they_o with_o the_o state_n of_o our_o present_a time_n and_o manner_n of_o man_n therein_o i_o seem_v to_o behold_v as_o in_o a_o clear_a glass_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o my_o understanding_n the_o very_a person_n and_o self_n same_o cause_n of_o saint_n augustine_n to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a writer_n of_o our_o day_n as_o contrariwise_o also_o that_o of_o the_o pelagian_n and_o of_o other_o old_a heretic_n to_o be_v in_o the_o protestant_n the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o make_v like_o account_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n i_o mean_v the_o catholic_n esteem_v they_o high_o and_o stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n the_o other_o reject_v they_o where_o they_o make_v against_o they_o which_o as_o it_o have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v before_o so_o may_v i_o here_o adjoine_v also_o many_o other_o proof_n thereof_o if_o i_o will_v spend_v more_o time_n in_o allege_v their_o sentence_n let_v m._n whitaker_n assertion_n speak_v for_o all_o who_o of_o this_o matter_n write_v thus_o if_o you_o argue_v from_o the_o witness_n of_o man_n be_v they_o never_o so_o learned_a and_o ancient_a we_o yield_v no_o more_o to_o their_o word_n in_o cause_n of_o say_v and_o religion_n than_o we_o perceive_v to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o scripture_n neither_o think_v you_o yourself_o to_o have_v prove_v any_o thing_n although_o you_o bring_v against_o we_o the_o whole_a consent_n &_o swarm_v of_o father_n except_o that_o which_o they_o say_v be_v justify_v not_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n himself_o the_o second_o consideration_n as_o my_o first_o consideration_n be_v whole_o conversant_a about_o the_o just_a deserve_a credit_n of_o ancient_a father_n agre_v to_o gather_v in_o general_a either_o in_o the_o full_a voice_n of_o all_o father_n or_o in_o the_o great_a part_n and_o consent_n of_o they_o so_o be_v my_o second_o employ_v about_o the_o same_o credit_n &_o authority_n of_o particular_a father_n either_o one_o or_o two_o or_o more_o aver_n any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o reprehend_v by_o other_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n about_o which_o point_n i_o see_v less_o ascribe_v in_o his_o majesty_n book_n unto_o their_o promerited_a estimation_n than_o catholic_n do_v hold_v in_o their_o orthodox_a assertion_n and_o much_o less_o than_o i_o myself_o have_v purposely_o read_v and_o observe_v in_o the_o former_a mention_v holy_a father_n s._n augustine_n concern_v that_o point_n for_o as_o his_o majesty_n yield_v less_o to_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o doctor_n which_o must_v
apostoli_fw-la hortabantur_fw-la homines_fw-la iustitiam_fw-la agere_fw-la bonum_fw-la quoque_fw-la operari_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la sit_fw-la hoc_fw-la the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v exhort_v man_n to_o do_v justice_n and_o to_o work_v good_a work_n for_o that_o this_o be_v in_o our_o power_n and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o great_a offence_n in_o s._n irenaeus_n to_o speak_v so_o like_o a_o papist_n 44._o they_o accuse_v also_o other_o father_n of_o the_o same_o age_n for_o like_a fault_n as_o justinus_n martyr_n if_o it_o be_v his_o book_n in_o his_o answer_n unto_o the_o hundred_o and_o three_o question_n ad_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la and_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n lib._n 2._o stromatum_fw-la say_v of_o this_o latter_a clemens_n liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la ubique_fw-la asserit_fw-la clement_n do_v every_o where_o defend_v freewill_n and_o final_o they_o give_v this_o censure_n of_o all_o that_o age_n nullus_fw-la ferè_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la locus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la tam_fw-la citò_fw-la obscurari_fw-la coeperit_fw-la atque_fw-la hic_fw-la de_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la there_o be_v no_o piece_n of_o doctrine_n that_o begin_v to_o be_v darken_v so_o soon_o as_o this_o of_o free_a will_n which_o darken_n be_v nothing_o else_o with_o they_o but_o the_o catholic_n sense_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o now_o also_o we_o hold_v to_o wit_n that_o albeit_o man_n his_o freewill_n be_v great_o work_n wound_v by_o adam_n fall_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o so_o extinguish_v but_o that_o nature_n be_v relieve_v by_o the_o holy_a assistance_n of_o christ_n grace_n and_o not_o otherwise_o the_o freewill_n of_o man_n may_v cooperate_v in_o do_v of_o good_a work_n which_o be_v also_o these_o holy_a father_n meaning_n 45._o the_o like_o the_o say_v magdeburgian_o do_v complain_v of_o the_o article_n of_o good_a work_n and_o perfection_n of_o life_n to_o wit_n that_o this_o doctrine_n also_o begin_v to_o be_v darken_v in_o this_o age_n so_o as_o according_a unto_o they_o the_o candle_n lighten_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o set_v upon_o the_o golden_a candlestick_n of_o the_o church_n dure_v but_o a_o little_a while_n 46._o furthermore_o they_o cyte_v also_o that_o say_n of_o s._n clement_n lib._n 5._o stromatum_fw-la which_o anger_v they_o very_o much_o gratia_n seruamur_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la absque_fw-la bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n but_o not_o without_o good_a work_n et_fw-fr lib._n 6._o stromatum_fw-la quando_fw-la audierimus_fw-la fides_fw-la tua_fw-la te_fw-la saluum_fw-la fecit_fw-la non_fw-la accepimus_fw-la eum_fw-la dicere_fw-la absolutè_fw-la choose_fw-la saluos_fw-la suturos_fw-la qui_fw-la quomodocunque_fw-la crediderint_fw-la nisi_fw-la facta_fw-la quoque_fw-la fuerint_fw-la consecuta_fw-la whensoever_o we_o shall_v hear_v those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n unto_o the_o cananaean_a thy_o faith_n have_v save_v thou_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v that_o he_o say_v absolute_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v whosoever_o believe_v in_o any_o sort_n except_o good_a deed_n do_v also_o follow_v and_o be_v this_o aught_o else_o but_o catholic_a doctrine_n to_o wit_n that_o faith_n must_v go_v before_o and_o good_a work_n follow_v and_o be_v not_o this_o the_o self_n same_o doctrine_n which_o s._n paul_n teach_v say_v that_o the_o save_a faith_n be_v fides_fw-la quae_fw-la per_fw-la charitatem_fw-la operatur_fw-la the_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o charity_n in_o us._n 47._o moreover_o concern_v the_o law_n that_o it_o do_v not_o impossible_a command_v impossible_a thing_n but_o that_o with_o the_o assistance_n of_o christ_n grace_n christian_n man_n may_v observe_v the_o commandment_n this_o the_o magdeburgian_o do_v censure_n for_o erroneous_a doctrine_n also_o in_o the_o father_n of_o this_o second_o age_n namely_o in_o justinus_n martyr_n resp_n ad_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la 103._o who_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o example_n of_o s._n paul_n himself_o &_o of_o zachary_n and_o elizabeth_n that_o be_v both_o of_o they_o just_a and_o s._n irenaeus_n teach_v the_o say_a doctrine_n lib._n 4._o c._n 30._o and_o clemens_n lib._n 2._o stromatum_fw-la be_v all_o father_n of_o this_o second_o age_n which_o doctrine_n be_v confirm_v afterward_o by_o all_o the_o father_n of_o subsequent_a age_n and_o yet_o do_v the_o goodfellow_n magdeburgians_n condemn_v the_o same_o with_o great_a resolution_n out_o of_o a_o maxim_n of_o aristotle_n most_o foolish_o and_o wicked_o apply_v say_v dato_n uno_fw-la inconuenienti_fw-la sequi_fw-la solent_fw-la infinita_fw-la one_o inconvenience_n be_v grant_v by_o these_o father_n to_o wit_n the_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n infinite_a other_o inconvenience_n be_v wont_a to_o follow_v which_o speech_n of_o the_o father_n though_o it_o be_v incommodious_a unto_o the_o magdeburgian_o &_o for_o such_o set_v down_o by_o they_o yet_o be_v the_o word_n plain_a for_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n now_o hold_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o that_o behalf_n 48._o but_o yet_o further_o concern_v the_o external_a usual_a sacrifice_n of_o christian_n then_o accustom_v to_o be_v offer_v on_o the_o christian_n altar_n the_o same_o magdeburgian_o be_v much_o trouble_v about_o certain_a speech_n of_o s._n ignatius_n and_o s._n irenaeus_n the_o first_o have_v these_o word_n in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la smyrnenses_n non_fw-fr lice_n sine_fw-la episcopo_fw-la neque_fw-la offer_n neque_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la immolare_fw-la it_o be_v not_o lawful_a without_o the_o bishop_n to_o make_v oblation_n or_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o the_o like_a word_n they_o cyte_v out_o of_o s._n irenaeus_n 4._o cap._n 32._o say_v of_o he_o satis_fw-la videtur_fw-la loqui_fw-la incommodè_fw-la cum_fw-la ait_fw-la novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la novam_fw-la docuit_fw-la oblationem_fw-la quam_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n accijiens_fw-la in_o universo_fw-la mundo_fw-la offer_v deo_fw-la irenaeus_n say_v they_o seem_v to_o speak_v incommodious_o enough_o when_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v teach_v a_o new_a oblation_n of_o a_o new_a testament_n which_o the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n do_v offer_v unto_o god_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n so_o they_o of_o the_o external_a christian_a sacrifice_n of_o those_o day_n check_v &_o condemn_v the_o father_n of_o that_o first_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n 49._o about_o tradition_n in_o like_a manner_n rite_n and_o cerimonye_n they_o complain_v in_o this_o age_n as_o they_o do_v of_o other_o tradition_n point_n before_o to_o wit_n that_o doctrina_fw-la de_fw-la libertate_fw-la christiana_fw-la nonnihil_a coepit_fw-la obseurari_fw-la that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a liberty_n begin_v not_o a_o little_a to_o be_v darken_v with_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n in_o this_o age_n also_o &_o succrevit_fw-la say_v they_o paulatim_fw-la error_n de_fw-la traditionibus_fw-la necessariò_fw-la obseruandis_fw-la and_o the_o error_n of_o necessary_a observation_n of_o tradition_n do_v by_o little_a and_o little_o grow_v up_o whereof_o they_o give_v a_o example_n out_o of_o s._n ignatius_n his_o epistle_n add_v philadelphios_n where_o he_o say_v dies_fw-la festos_fw-la nolite_fw-la inhonor_n be_v quadragesimam_fw-la verò_fw-la nolite_fw-la pro_fw-la nihilo_fw-la habere_fw-la imitationem_fw-la enim_fw-la cominet_fw-la dei_fw-la conversationis_fw-la hebdomadam_fw-la etiam_fw-la passionis_fw-la nolite_fw-la despicere_fw-la quarta_fw-la verò_fw-la &_o sexta_fw-la feria_fw-la ieiunate_fw-la reliquias_fw-la pauperibus_fw-la porrigentes_fw-la do_v not_o dishonour_v holy_a day_n do_v not_o neglect_v lend_v for_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o the_o imitation_n of_o christ_n his_o conversation_n who_o be_v our_o god_n do_v not_o despise_v the_o passion_n week_n do_v you_o fast_o upon_o wensdaye_n and_o fry_v day_n &_o that_o which_o be_v leave_v of_o your_o meat_n give_v it_o unto_o the_o poor_a and_o this_o be_v the_o darkness_n which_o the_o magdeburgian_o do_v observe_v or_o rather_o this_o be_v the_o light_n which_o those_o angel_n of_o darkness_n and_o instrument_n of_o satan_n will_v darken_v in_o the_o apostolical_a write_n of_o s._n ignatius_n and_o other_o ancient_n of_o this_o very_o next_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n contrary_a unto_o their_o carnal_a and_o evangelicall_a liberty_n which_o their_o first_o luxurious_a apostata_fw-la and_o cloysterbreaker_n luther_n set_v abroach_o 50._o the_o same_o magdeburgian_o do_v cite_v a_o plain_a sentence_n out_o of_o s._n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o whereby_o he_o prove_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o wit_n for_o her_o more_o powerable_a principality_n rome_n it_o be_v of_o necessity_n that_o all_o church_n shall_v come_v unto_o she_o that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o faithful_a people_n from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o that_o in_o she_o have_v be_v conserve_v ever_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o plain_a sentence_n the_o magdeburgian_o do_v endeavour_v to_o delude_v by_o diverse_a shift_n as_o first_o that_o it_o seem_v to_o savour_n of_o novelty_n then_o that_o this_o sentence_n be_v find_v say_v they_o in_o the_o copy_n that_o now_o be_v extant_a of_o irenaeus_n as_o though_o there_o be_v other_o not_o extant_a that_o have_v it_o not_o three_o
say_v lactantius_n s._n gregory_n nyssen_n hilarius_n nazianzen_n s._n ambrose_n theophilus_n alexandrinus_n ephraim_n and_o other_o all_o father_n of_o this_o age_n do_v open_o defend_v the_o same_o whereupon_o they_o i_o mean_v the_o magdeburgian_o conclude_v in_o these_o word_n i_o be_o cogitet_fw-la pius_fw-la 293._o lector_fw-la quam_fw-la procul_fw-la haec_fw-la aetas_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la articulo_fw-la à_fw-la doctrina_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la desciverit_fw-la now_o let_v the_o godly_a reader_n consider_v how_o far_o this_o age_n depart_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o article_n of_o good_a work_n but_o i_o will_v think_v it_o more_o reason_n to_o exhort_v yea_o and_o to_o beseech_v the_o reader_n even_o as_o he_o have_v care_n of_o the_o everlasting_a welfare_n and_o salvation_n of_o his_o soul_n to_o consider_v serious_o &_o indifferent_o set_v all_o kind_n of_o prejudice_n apart_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o more_o likely_a that_o so_o many_o learned_a and_o holy_a father_n that_o live_v with_o so_o great_a admiration_n of_o their_o virtue_n learning_n piety_n in_o this_o age_n shall_v know_v what_o agree_v with_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o what_o agree_v not_o aswell_o or_o as_o a_o man_n will_v imagine_v somewhat_o better_a than_o these_o four_o quarrel_a companion_n the_o magdeburgian_o i_o mean_v illyricus_n wigandus_n judex_n and_o faber_n for_o these_o four_o do_v only_o subscribe_v their_o dedicatory_a epistle_n to_o queen_n elizabeth_n upon_o the_o year_n 1560._o 73._o s._n bernard_n rule_n &_o prescription_n of_o antiquity_n be_v this_o quantò_fw-la viciniores_fw-la adventui_fw-la saluatoris_fw-la tantò_fw-la mysterium_fw-la salutis_fw-la pleniùt_fw-la perceperunt_fw-la the_o near_a the_o holy_a father_n be_v unto_o christ_n his_o incarnation_n the_o more_o full_o receive_v and_o perceive_v they_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o yet_o these_o four_o good_a fellow_n do_v thus_o presume_v to_o censure_v the_o most_o reverend_a and_o learned_a ancient_a father_n as_o you_o see_v 74._o and_o on_o this_o fashion_n these_o man_n go_v forwards_o in_o set_v down_o all_o the_o 18._o or_o 19_o head_n of_o doctrine_n before_o mention_v as_o hold_v by_o the_o father_n of_o this_o four_o age_n to_o wit_n pennance_n satisfaction_n invocation_n of_o saint_n cite_v above_o a_o dozen_o father_n of_o this_o age_n for_o the_o same_o of_o tradition_n about_o virginity_n monastical_a life_n &_o the_o like_a wherein_o they_o do_v so_o check_v condenne_n &_o contemn_v the_o say_v holy_a father_n as_o pass_v all_o modesty_n &_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o token_n of_o manifest_a heresy_n 75._o s._n ambrose_n say_v they_o in_o his_o second_o book_n ad_fw-la marcellinam_fw-la nimis_fw-la insolent_a pronunciat_fw-la de_fw-fr virginum_fw-la meritis_fw-la ambrose_n do_v pronounce_v to_o insolent_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o virginity_n the_o like_a and_o worse_o they_o speak_v of_o s._n ephraim_n and_o s._n athanasius_n 301._o for_o that_o they_o write_v of_o monk_n and_o namely_o s._n ephraim_n that_o they_o be_v perfecti_fw-la pugnatores_fw-la paradisi_fw-la amoenitatem_fw-la ante_fw-la oculos_fw-la habentes_fw-la perfect_a fighter_n that_o have_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o sweetness_n of_o paradise_n these_o man_n cry_v out_o against_o this_o quid_fw-la potest_fw-la monstrosiùs_fw-la dici_fw-la contra_fw-la meritum_fw-la christi_fw-la what_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o monstrous_o against_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n 76._o and_o for_o that_o s._n ambrose_n serm_n 6._o de_fw-fr margarita_n have_v these_o word_n whosoever_o therefore_o do_v honour_n martyr_n do_v honour_n christ_n and_o he_o that_o contemn_v saint_n contemn_v the_o lord_n of_o saint_n which_o be_v conform_v to_o the_o gospel_n the_o magdeburgian_o complain_v cry_v out_o i_o be_o cogitet_fw-la pius_fw-la lector_n quànt_fw-la tetra_fw-la suntista_fw-la let_v the_o godly_a reader_n consider_v how_o horrible_a these_o thing_n be_v the_o godly_a reader_n have_v consider_v and_o he_o find_v nothing_o deliver_v by_o these_o father_n but_o the_o holy_a catholic_a doctrine_n and_o as_o for_o your_o exclamation_n they_o be_v but_o the_o barkinge_n of_o vigilantius_n or_o rather_o as_o s._n hierome_n more_o fit_o call_v he_o dormitantius_n and_o other_o ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n against_o the_o holy_a relic_n of_o saint_n and_o martyr_n reviue_v and_o renew_v by_o you_o again_o rake_v out_o of_o the_o ash_n of_o hell_n and_o hellish_a heresy_n 77._o and_o final_o not_o to_o be_v tedious_a in_o go_v forward_o with_o a_o copious_a enumeration_n of_o the_o foresay_a article_n i_o do_v only_o admonish_v the_o reader_n for_o the_o last_o article_n mention_v of_o purgatory_n how_o they_o do_v produce_v three_o father_n more_o of_o this_o age_n that_o hold_v the_o same_o to_o wit_n lactantius_n prudentius_n and_o s._n hierome_n as_o they_o may_v have_v do_v many_o more_o and_o they_o add_v unto_o the_o say_a former_a number_n diverse_a other_o article_n which_o the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n do_v teach_v as_o of_o the_o particular_a rule_n of_o religious_a people_n now_o in_o use_n de_fw-fr memorijs_fw-la martyrum_fw-la of_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o martyr_n in_o church_n and_o altar_n erect_v and_o set_v up_o in_o their_o honour_n de_fw-fr signo_fw-la crucis_fw-la of_o the_o external_a use_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o miracle_n that_o thereby_o have_v happen_v whereof_o prudentius_n hymno_fw-la ante_fw-la somnum_fw-la write_v thus_o in_o commendation_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o benefit_n that_o redound_v by_o use_v this_o laudable_a christian_a ceremony_n crux_fw-la pellit_fw-la omne_fw-la crimen_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n keep_v of_o all_o sin_n from_o us._n and_o s._n ephraim_n lib._n de_fw-la poenit_fw-la cap._n 3._o advife_v we_o thus_o pingamus_fw-la in_o ianuis_fw-la ac_fw-la in_o frontibus_fw-la nostris_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v we_o paint_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o our_o gate_n in_o our_o forehead_n in_o our_o mouth_n in_o our_o breast_n etc._n etc._n and_o many_o other_o such_o say_n of_o holy_a father_n of_o this_o age_n 78._o wherefore_o to_o conclude_v we_o see_v that_o this_o four_o age_n agree_v with_o the_o former_a three_o in_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n hold_v for_o catholic_a throughout_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n at_o this_o day_n and_o as_o the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n do_v consent_n with_o their_o predecessor_n so_o shall_v we_o see_v they_o not_o dissent_v from_o their_o successor_n as_o shall_v appear_v by_o the_o next_o ensue_a age_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a demonstration_n of_o the_o true_a roman_a catholic_n church_n and_o of_o her_o doctrine_n confirm_v by_o all_o record_n of_o antiquity_n even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adverfary_n the_o magdeburgian_o then_o let_v the_o english_fw-fr protestant_n answer_n unto_o this_o evidence_n and_o give_v a_o better_a if_o they_o can_v but_o we_o shall_v pass_v further_o yet_o to_o make_v a_o insight_n into_o two_o other_o age_n that_o ensue_v the_o five_o and_o six_o age_n 79._o there_o follow_v the_o five_o and_o six_o age_n whereof_o the_o former_a be_v receive_v here_o by_o his_o majesty_n in_o the_o second_o edition_n of_o his_o english_a premonition_n though_o in_o the_o first_o the_o first_o 400._o year_n be_v only_o allow_v as_o have_v be_v say_v and_o the_o late_a be_v comprehend_v in_o m._n jewel_n his_o challenge_n at_o s._n paul_n cross_n who_o promise_v there_o open_o to_o allow_v any_o of_o the_o father_n or_o counsel_n that_o can_v be_v bring_v within_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n but_o this_o public_a declamation_n be_v but_o a_o vain_a ostentation_n of_o the_o challenger_n and_o this_o large_a offer_n be_v also_o restrain_v and_o revoke_v afterwards_o by_o other_o both_o at_o paul_n cross_n and_o in_o either_o of_o the_o university_n in_o so_o much_o that_o doctor_n humphrey_n in_o oxford_z in_o a_o funeral_n speech_n make_v of_o the_o say_v m._n jewel_n by_o the_o former_a d._n humphrey_n do_v not_o for_o bear_v to_o tax_v he_o open_o of_o inconsideration_n for_o his_o so_o large_a and_o liberal_a offer_n of_o father_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n 10._o but_o here_o in_o this_o our_o affair_n and_o business_n we_o have_v now_o in_o hand_n we_o have_v think_v good_a to_o join_v both_o these_o age_n together_o for_o that_o in_o they_o both_o the_o like_a descent_n of_o doctrine_n one_o after_o the_o other_o be_v still_o to_o be_v find_v the_o latter_a repeat_n and_o confirm_v the_o former_a and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o point_n i_o shall_v need_v to_o go_v no_o further_o then_o to_o the_o confession_n and_o concession_n of_o our_o etc._n adversary_n themselves_o the_o magdeburgian_o for_o there_o they_o show_v for_o example_n in_o the_o first_o century_n first_o of_o freewill_n to_o wit_n that_o albeit_o the_o doctor_n of_o this_o age_n interdum_fw-la benè_fw-la &_o sanè_fw-la videantur_fw-la loqui_fw-la tandem_fw-la
tamen_fw-la liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la spiritualib_a we_o etiam_fw-la statuunt_fw-la albeit_o the_o father_n sometime_o speak_v well_o and_o sound_o yet_o at_o length_n they_o affirm_v that_o man_n have_v freewill_n even_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o then_o they_o begin_v with_o s._n chrysostome_n allege_v many_o plain_a place_n out_o of_o his_o work_n at_o large_a say_v chrysostomus_n passim_fw-la liberi_fw-la arbitrij_fw-la patronum_fw-la agit_fw-fr s._n chrysostome_n do_v every_o where_o play_v the_o advocate_n for_o freewill_n from_o s._n chrysostome_n they_o pass_v unto_o s._n augustine_n and_o from_o s._n augustine_n to_o s._n cyril_n and_o from_o they_o to_o theodoret_n hesichius_n thalassius_n faustus_n marcus_n eremita_n and_o joannes_n cassianus_n all_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o this_o five_o age_n and_o the_o same_o they_o do_v in_o the_o six_o age_n allege_v many_o place_n out_o of_o s._n gregory_n the_o first_o as_o also_o out_o of_o euodius_n olympiodorus_n and_o other_o 81._o then_o pass_v they_o unto_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n show_v that_o the_o father_n of_o these_o age_n do_v not_o ascribe_v justification_n unto_o only_a faith_n but_o require_v also_o work_n for_o which_o they_o allege_v large_a sentence_n out_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n s._n cyril_n s._n augustine_n though_o more_o contract_o and_o out_o of_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a who_o offend_v they_o much_o by_o say_v recta_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la pervenitur_fw-la ad_fw-la regnum_fw-la dei_fw-la by_o right_a faith_n and_o good_a work_n we_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o from_o he_o they_o pass_v to_o s._n prosper_n hesichius_n sedulius_n primasius_n theodulus_n all_o of_o the_o forename_a father_n hold_v the_o same_o erroneous_a opinion_n as_o it_o please_v their_o masterships_n to_z call_v it_o for_o that_o work_n be_v by_o they_o ever_o join_v with_o faith_n and_o that_o in_o the_o last_o judgement_n christ_n shall_v question_v with_o they_o not_o so_o much_o what_o they_o have_v believe_v as_o what_o they_o have_v practise_v 82._o and_o the_o same_o do_v they_o in_o the_o next_o hundred_o year_n after_o allege_v for_o it_o the_o write_n of_o cassiodorus_n olympiodorus_n andraeas_n hierosolymitanus_n and_o above_o all_o and_o more_o large_o they_o allege_v above_o a_o dozen_o place_n out_o of_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o say_v vita_fw-la aeterna_fw-la ex_fw-la piae_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la actionibus_fw-la comparatur_fw-la life_n everlasting_a in_o the_o next_o world_n 1._o be_v prepare_v and_o get_v by_o pious_a action_n in_o this_o life_n 83._o from_o this_o article_n they_o skip_v unto_o another_o of_o the_o 506._o excellency_n and_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n which_o article_n they_o begin_v thus_o nimiùm_fw-la haec_fw-la aetas_fw-la bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la adscripsit_fw-la this_o five_o age_n do_v ascribe_v to_o much_o unto_o the_o good_a work_n of_o man_n which_o they_o declare_v large_o first_o out_o of_o chrysostome_n his_o write_n say_v that_o he_o be_v immodicus_fw-la encomiastes_n bonorum_fw-la operum_fw-la a_o immoderate_a commender_n of_o good_a work_n and_o from_o he_o they_o pass_v unto_o s._n augustine_n shake_v he_o also_o by_o the_o sleeve_n and_o take_v he_o up_o for_o halt_v and_o say_v augustinus_n etiam_fw-la nimiùm_fw-la interdum_fw-la operibus_fw-la tribuit_fw-la augustine_n also_o attribute_v some_o tim_n too_o much_o to_o good_a work_n then_o they_o pass_v unto_o pope_n leo_fw-la and_o show_v the_o same_o excess_n out_o of_o he_o and_o from_o these_o they_o come_v unto_o s._n prosper_n to_o saluianus_n to_o maximus_n to_o salonius_n to_o thalassius_n to_o theodulus_n to_o eucherius_n to_o paulinus_n and_o some_o other_o all_o doctor_n and_o father_n of_o this_o five_o age_n 84._o and_o then_o in_o the_o six_o age_n follow_v the_o same_o methood_n under_o their_o article_n de_fw-fr bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la they_o reprehend_v for_o ascribe_v to_o much_o thereunto_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a euodius_n cassiodorus_n olympiodorus_n fortunatus_n and_o justus_n father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o doctor_n of_o those_o day_n 85._o there_o follow_v the_o article_n of_o penance_n wherewith_o they_o begin_v thus_o consessioni_fw-la ieiuniijs_fw-la &_o alijs_fw-la ritibus_fw-la nimiùm_fw-la vendicat_fw-la chrysostomus_n chrysostome_n do_v ascribe_v to_o much_o unto_o confession_n fast_v and_o other_o rite_n of_o penance_n and_o of_o the_o same_o error_n do_v they_o condemn_v hesichius_n for_o that_o lib._n 2._o in_o cap._n 6._o levit._n he_o say_v that_o true_a penance_n do_v consist_v in_o fast_v watch_v haireclothe_n tear_n prayer_n and_o almsdeed_n the_o same_o error_n they_o ascribe_v to_o maximus_n joannes_n cassianus_n eucherius_n doctor_n of_o this_o five_o age_n and_o in_o the_o six_o century_n they_o lay_v the_o same_o imputation_n upon_o cassiodorus_n and_o s._n gregory_n especial_o chide_v he_o for_o that_o he_o say_v poenitentiam_fw-la agere_fw-la est_fw-la perpetrata_fw-la mala_fw-la plangere_fw-la &_o plangerda_fw-la non_fw-la perpetrare_fw-la this_o be_v to_o do_v penance_n to_o moan_v and_o bewail_v our_o sin_n we_o have_v commit_v and_o not_o to_o commit_v again_o thing_n euang._n worthy_a of_o bewail_v what_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o divine_o by_o this_o heavenly_a doctor_n and_o will_v a_o man_n judge_v these_o man_n to_o be_v christian_n dare_v thus_o to_o open_v their_o mouth_n and_o public_o to_o blaspheme_v 86._o i_o may_v pass_v further_a to_o allege_v much_o more_o out_o of_o these_o magdeburgian_n centuriator_n which_o they_o produce_v out_o of_o every_o age_n most_o manifest_o against_o themselves_o and_o their_o own_o cause_n with_o this_o only_a fond_a confidence_n that_o all_o authority_n and_o credit_n of_o the_o venerable_a testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v shift_v of_o by_o say_v only_o that_o they_o be_v incommodious_a opinion_n blot_n stubble_n and_o error_n of_o the_o father_n as_o though_o the_o very_a glean_n magdeburgians_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o better_o than_o their_o whole_a vintage_n and_o these_o blot_n and_o stubble_n and_o false_o suppose_a error_n be_v not_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o their_o best_a truth_n but_o who_o tell_v these_o good_a fellow_n that_o these_o be_v error_n what_o church_n ever_o hold_v they_o so_o what_o general_n council_n ever_o conclude_v they_o so_o nay_o what_o one_o father_n or_o one_o ancient_a writer_n the_o grand_a heretic_n their_o ancient_a predecessor_n except_v do_v once_o open_a his_o mouth_n to_o speak_v against_o either_o all_o or_o any_o one_o of_o these_o doctrine_n if_o they_o can_v disprove_v any_o one_o of_o these_o doctrine_n according_a to_o any_o one_o of_o the_o forename_a challenge_n church_n counsel_n one_o father_n or_o many_o we_o do_v faithful_o promise_v to_o renounce_v they_o all_o as_o stubble_n and_o error_n as_o they_o speak_v but_o if_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v make_v good_a against_o any_o one_o the_o least_o and_o weak_a suppose_a doctrine_n then_o must_v these_o doctrine_n as_o hitherto_o they_o have_v stand_v in_o the_o church_n for_o orthodox_n so_o must_v they_o hereafter_o continue_v catholic_a and_o they_o themselves_o for_o confess_v the_o father_n to_o hold_v they_o and_o we_o withal_o urge_v antiquity_n that_o do_v deny_v consent_n of_o father_n in_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n general_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n can_v be_v no_o less_o than_o great_a and_o rash_a presumption_n 87._o and_o yet_o for_o full_a conclusion_n i_o must_v advertise_v the_o reader_n to_o note_v this_o one_o point_n which_o in_o my_o judgement_n be_v very_o remarkable_a for_o these_o magdeburgian_o do_v conclusion_n scarce_o allege_v one_o place_n of_o ten_o of_o these_o that_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o father_n work_n themselves_o for_o proof_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a religion_n as_o every_o man_n may_v easy_o discern_v if_o he_o please_v to_o read_v the_o catholic_a writer_n that_o make_v profession_n purposely_o to_o allege_v the_o place_n of_o ancient_a father_n as_o namely_o canisius_n in_o his_o large_a catechism_n cardinal_n bellarmine_n throughout_o all_o his_o work_n cardinal_n baronius_n coccius_n in_o his_o thesaurus_fw-la catholicus_n and_o other_o but_o yet_o these_o that_o the_o magdeburgian_o please_v to_o cite_v be_v sufficient_a to_o daunt_v the_o english_a protestant_n his_o confidence_n in_o the_o ancient_a father_n since_o that_o they_o alone_o of_o themselves_o confute_v and_o confound_v both_o he_o and_o his_o religion_n with_o what_o face_n then_o can_v the_o english_a protestant_n vaunt_n that_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v for_o he_o and_o further_o these_o few_o place_n of_o many_o that_o may_v be_v heap_v together_o may_v as_o i_o hope_v suffice_v to_o give_v his_o excellent_a majesty_n our_o sovereign_n satisfaction_n or_o at_o leastwise_o sufficient_a light_n by_o these_o to_o pass_v further_o and_o to_o seek_v more_o sound_a information_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n
of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n which_o his_o say_a majesty_n most_o royal_o offer_v to_o follow_v for_o open_v the_o window_n unto_o which_o light_n i_o have_v think_v it_o my_o bind_a duty_n both_o before_o god_n and_o man_n to_o take_v this_o small_a labour_n and_o to_o lay_v these_o few_o head_n of_o consideration_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o highness_n most_o wise_a judgement_n and_o understanding_n the_o six_o chapter_n contain_v a_o brief_a contemplation_n of_o what_o have_v be_v hitherto_o say_v with_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a to_o his_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n and_o now_o have_v handle_v these_o point_n at_o some_o more_o length_n then_o at_o the_o beginning_n i_o have_v purpose_v i_o hope_v the_o benignity_n and_o clemency_n of_o his_o majesty_n will_v take_v in_o good_a part_n that_o leave_v the_o reader_n i_o do_v return_n unto_o he_o again_o as_o unto_o my_o most_o dear_o belove_v reverence_v and_o dread_a sovereign_n to_o lay_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o prudent_a consideration_n the_o sum_n of_o that_o which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v consider_v of_o 2._o first_o then_o the_o point_n of_o be_v a_o true_a catholic_a according_a unto_o the_o name_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o word_n be_v of_o such_o importance_n necessity_n and_o consequence_n as_o have_v be_v show_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n that_o no_o riches_n in_o this_o world_n no_o wealth_n no_o treasure_n no_o state_n no_o power_n no_o policy_n no_o human_a felicity_n may_v be_v compare_v with_o it_o as_o right_o s._n augustine_n do_v intimate_v and_o for_o that_o your_o majesty_n eternal_a weal_n after_o the_o brief_a and_o transitory_a passage_n of_o this_o life_n depend_v thereof_o i_o can_v but_o most_o humble_o most_o hearty_o and_o most_o dutiful_o fall_v prostrate_a at_o your_o foot_n beseech_v you_o to_o give_v some_o serious_a attendance_n and_o catholic_a attention_n to_o this_o high_a and_o main_n point_n of_o everlasting_a salvation_n to_o seek_v out_o what_o be_v true_o catholic_a both_o in_o the_o church_n for_o who_o epitheton_fw-la the_o name_n be_v first_o by_o the_o apostle_n invent_v as_o also_o in_o particular_a man_n who_o be_v a_o true_a catholic_a and_o who_o follow_v the_o rule_n which_o the_o name_n describe_v to_o wit_n he_o that_o in_o christian_a religion_n follow_v universality_n and_o not_o singularity_n the_o whole_a and_o not_o a_o part_n ancienty_n and_o novelty_n that_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v and_o conserve_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o not_o invent_v frame_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o late_a time_n 3._o and_o for_o that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n heresy_n be_v the_o opposite_a and_o contradictory_n unto_o catholic_a religion_n for_o that_o it_o make_v choice_n of_o a_o part_n to_o itself_o and_o thereby_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v the_o high_a sin_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o almighty_a god_n that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v commit_v upon_o earth_n for_o that_o it_o overthrow_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o faith_n under_o pretence_n to_o establish_v heresy_n and_o reform_v faith_n my_o desire_n be_v so_o ardent_a in_o this_o point_n that_o your_o majesty_n shall_v enter_v into_o due_a consideration_n thereof_o as_o almighty_a god_n bear_v wirnesse_n unto_o my_o soul_n and_o spirit_n that_o nothing_o in_o this_o life_n stand_v more_o near_o my_o hart_n consider_v the_o eternity_n of_o the_o next_o world_n the_o immutable_a weal_n or_o woe_n thereof_o the_o vae_fw-la or_o euge_a that_o each_o man_n be_v to_o receive_v as_o well_o prince_n as_o other_o and_o that_o these_o earthly_a princedom_n will_v seem_v but_o shadow_n at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o worthy_a one_o hour_n of_o that_o glory_n or_o misery_n that_o be_v to_o be_v get_v or_o lose_v by_o catholic_n religion_n or_o heresy_n in_o this_o life_n and_o this_o be_v my_o first_o contemplation_n and_o i_o shall_v pray_v almighty_a god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v also_o your_o majesty_n 4._o the_o second_o be_v about_o those_o four_o way_n propose_v by_o your_o majesty_n for_o aver_n catholicisme_n and_o clear_v from_o heresy_n which_o be_v the_o admit_v and_o believe_v of_o all_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o receive_n of_o the_o three_o creed_n the_o approve_v the_o four_o first_o counsel_n and_o the_o acceptance_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o first_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n in_o all_o which_o if_o with_o the_o admit_v in_o word_n there_o be_v also_o a_o propose_v true_a catholic_a sense_n no_o doubt_n but_o they_o do_v make_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o do_v condemn_v heresy_n but_o the_o importance_n of_o all_o stand_v in_o the_o exposition_n for_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o i_o think_v best_a myself_o or_o to_o acknowledge_v they_o for_o canonical_a or_o not_o canonical_a as_o i_o or_o some_o few_o with_o i_o of_o late_a time_n shall_v please_v to_o prescribe_v or_o to_o admit_v the_o three_o creed_n with_o that_o exposition_n of_o the_o article_n as_o i_o and_o i_o shall_v best_o allow_v or_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n in_o some_o thing_n and_o not_o in_o other_o or_o the_o first_o four_o hundred_o year_n of_o father_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o in_o my_o censure_n do_v agree_v with_o scripture_n be_v to_o reduce_v all_o to_o my_o own_o judgement_n a_o thing_n most_o opposite_a to_o catholicisme_n and_o proper_a to_o heresy_n as_o we_o have_v at_o large_a declare_v 5._o wherefore_o upon_o my_o knee_n i_o do_v most_o humble_o supplicate_v your_o majesty_n to_o consider_v well_o of_o this_o and_o especial_o of_o the_o last_o point_n concern_v the_o ancient_a father_n which_o do_v in_o effect_n contain_v all_o the_o rest_n for_o that_o these_o man_n deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o scripture_n together_o with_o the_o true_a understanding_n thereof_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n these_o man_n deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o three_o creed_n the_o first_o as_o from_o the_o apostle_n the_o other_o as_o from_o the_o church_n the_o three_o as_o from_o a_o private_a man_n but_o yet_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n these_o man_n deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n wherein_o diverse_a of_o themselves_o sit_v as_o judge_n and_o bishop_n and_o have_v voyee_n and_o suffrage_n in_o the_o same_o these_o man_n be_v they_o that_o examine_v the_o controversy_n determine_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n condemn_a heresy_n a_o athematize_v heretic_n and_o clear_v the_o coast_n of_o all_o these_o wicked_a and_o turbulent_a encumbrance_n which_o seditious_a and_o headstrong_a spirit_n have_v raise_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n by_o their_o contention_n 6._o and_o final_o these_o be_v they_o who_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v use_v as_o sanne_n to_o winnow_v his_o corn_n &_o to_o purge_v the_o flore_fw-la of_o his_o church_n separate_v the_o chaff_n from_o the_o wheat_n and_o eroneous_a doctrine_n from_o the_o truth_n wherein_o they_o be_v so_o zealous_a and_o diligent_a labourer_n as_o not_o the_o least_o weed_n can_v spring_v up_o in_o this_o field_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o these_o careful_a good_a watchman_n and_o faithful_a gardener_n do_v present_o note_v and_o pursue_v the_o same_o until_o it_o be_v either_o root_v out_o or_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n and_o thereby_o as_o branch_n cut_v of_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o vine_n suffer_v to_o wither_v away_o and_o to_o consume_v of_o themselves_o for_o proof_n father_n whereof_o we_o may_v allege_v as_o many_o example_n as_o there_o have_v be_v different_a heresy_n and_o heretic_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n which_o albeit_o they_o ruffle_v much_o &_o mighty_o for_o the_o time_n and_o have_v often_o great_a prince_n king_n emperor_n and_o potentate_n to_o favour_n and_o patronize_v they_o as_o the_o protestant_n have_v now_o your_o majesty_n yet_o be_v they_o so_o consume_v in_o time_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o very_a name_n of_o many_o of_o they_o be_v now_o scarce_o remember_v and_o much_o less_o their_o argument_n reason_n proof_n and_o scripture_n which_o they_o bring_v for_o the_o same_o and_o be_v it_o not_o that_o in_o these_o father_n book_n who_o be_v their_o enemy_n some_o mention_n be_v make_v thereof_o we_o shall_v scarce_o know_v that_o there_o have_v be_v such_o man_n in_o the_o world_n 7._o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o church_n that_o condemn_v these_o man_n and_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n live_v therein_o remain_v ever_o both_o then_o and_o after_o victorious_a and_o shall_v do_v to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o still_o by_o succession_n and_o continuation_n the_o same_o church_n have_v come_v down_o from_o age_n to_o age_n &_o one_o age_n give_v testimony_n to_o another_o of_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o say_a church_n